INTERNATIONAL COURT OF JUSTICE
CASE CONCERNING MARITIME
DELIMITATION IN THE BLACK SEA
(ROMANIA v. UKRAINE)
MEMORIAL
SUBMITTED BY
ROMANIA
19 AUGUST 2005 TABLE OF CONTENTS
CHAPTER 1 INTRODUCTION 5
(1) The dispute submitted to the Court 5
(2) The Court’s jurisdiction over the dispute 5
(3) Summary of Romania’s Position 9
(4) The structure of this Memorial
11
PART I GEOGRAPHICAL, HISTORICAL AND
DIPLOMATIC BACKGROUND 13
CHAPTER 2 THE GEOGRAPHICAL SITUATION 14
(1) The general geographical setting 14
(2) Brief introduction on Serpents’ Island 17
CHAPTER 3 THE HISTORICAL BACKGROUND 20
(1) Earlier period
20
(2) The period 1700-1939 20
(3) Serpents’ Island in and after World War II 27
(4) The Events of 1948 29
CHAPTER 4 MARITIME BOUNDARY
NEGOTIATIONS AFTER 1948 31
(1) Introduction 31
(2) Negotiations and agreements concluded with the Soviet Union 31
(a) The land border and the maritime boundary around
Serpents’ Island
31
(b) Subsequent continental shelf and exclusive economic zone
negotiations with the Soviet Union 43
(3) Negotiations with Ukraine following its independence 43
(a)The 1997 treaties
43
(b) The 2003 Border Regime Treaty 45
(c) Negotiations in relation to the continental shelf and the exclusive
economic zones
47
(4) Conclusions 49
CHAPTER 5 THE INFLUENCE OF HISTORY 51
CHAPTER 6 EXISTING DELIMITATIONS IN THE
BLACK SEA 61
(1) Introduction 61
(2) Delimitation Agreements with and between third States 63
(a) Turkey/USSR (Ukraine, Georgia, Russian Federation) 63
(b) Turkey/Bulgaria
65
(3) Relevance of other delimitations to the Court’s task 69
PART II THE APPLICABLE LAW AS AGREED
BY THE PARTIES 73
CHAPTER 7 APPLICABLE BILATERAL TREATIES 74
(1) Paramountcy of agreement in maritime delimitation 74
2(2) Relevant agreements between Romania and Ukraine
78
(a) The Romanian-Soviet Proces Verbaux concluded in 1949, 1963 and 78
1974
(b) The Treaty on Relations 79
(c) The Additional Agreement 80
(d) The 2003 Border Regime Treaty 81
(3) Conclusions
82
CHAPTER 8 THE PRINCIPLES IDENTIFIED IN THE
ADDITIONAL AGREEMENT 83
(1) Introduction 83
(2) Article 121 of the 1982 UNCLOS 84
(a) The origins of Article 121 84
(i) The travaux préparatoires of the 1982 UNCLOS
84
(ii) Romania’s Declaration concerning Article 121 91
(b) Significance of the applicability of Article 121 94
(c) Article 121 in the jurisprudence of this Court and other tribunals 95
(3) The principle of equidistance: adjacent and opposite coasts 98
(4) The principle of equity and the method of proportionality
102
(5) The principle of non-contestation of territory 108
(6) The principle of taking into account special circumstances 108
(a) The provisional equidistance/median line and special circumstances 110
(b) Islands as a special circumstance 113
(i) Judicial and arbitral decisions 114
(ii) State practice 122
(iii) Conclusions
127
(c) The enclosed nature of the Black Sea as a special circumstance 128
(7) Conclusions 128
PART III THE EQUITABLE SOLUTION 130
CHAPTER 9 RELEVANT COASTS AND
RELEVANT AREAS 131
(1) Introduction: the two sectors of delimitation 131
(2) Determination of the relevant coasts 134
(3) The relevant area 139
CHAPTER 10 SERPENTS’ ISLAND AS A ROCK
WITHIN THE SCOPE OF ARTICLE
121(3) OF THE 1982 UNCLOS 141
(1) Introduction 141
(2) The meaning of the term “rocks” in Article 121(3) 142
(i) Serpents’ Island is a rocky formation 146
(ii) Serpents’ Island is devoid of water sources other than rainfall and
practically devoid of soil, vegetation and fauna 154
(iii) Serpents’ Island is incapable of sustaining human habitation 163
(iv) Serpents’ Island is incapable of sustaining any economic life of its 173
own
(3) Ukraine recent activities on Serpents’ Island cannot change its qualification as a
rock within the scope of Article 121(3)
179
(4) Conclusions 193
3CHAPTER 11 THE MARITIME BOUNDARY
ACCORDING TO THE APPLICABLE
LAW 195
(1) Introduction 195
(2) Sector 1: the boundary between adjacent coasts – from Point F around Serpents’
Island and to the median line 195
(a) Introduction: the primacy of agreement in maritime delimitation 195
(b) The agreed boundary around Serpents’ Island
198
(c) Confirmation of the maritime boundary following the 12 nm arc
around Serpents’ Island in official maps produced by the USSR and
Ukraine, by Romania and by third States 206
(d) Agreement as to the applicability of Article 121 (3) of the 1982
UNCLOS (paragraph 4 (a) of the Additional Agreement) 213
(e) The maritime boundary around Serpents’ Island would be the same
independent of any agreement between the Parties 214
(f) The point of departure of the maritime boundary from the 12 nm arc
around Serpents’ Island 215
(g) The course of the boundary beyond Point X 217
(h) The course of the boundary in Sector 1 223
(3) Sector 2: The boundary between opposite coasts (Romania/Crimean Peninsula)
225
(a) The provisional median line in Sector 2 225
(b) The location of Point T – the turning point between Sector 1 and
Sector 2 229
(c) Identifying relevant/special circumstances in Sector 2 229
(d) The course of the boundary in Sector 2 229
(4) The maritime boundary between the exclusive economic zones and the
continental shelf of Romania and Ukraine in the Black Sea 231
CHAPTER 12 EQUITABLENESS OF THE
DELIMITATION LINE 233
(1) Introduction 233
(2) The proportionality test 233
(3) The principle of no cut-off 234
(4) The necessity to protect security interests of States
236
SUMMARY OF CONCLUSIONS 238
SUBMISSION 240
LIST OF ANNEXES 242
LIST OF MAPS 251
4 CHAPTER 1
INTRODUCTION
(1) The dispute submitted to the Court
1.1 This Memorial is filed in accordance with the Court’s Order of 19 November
2004. In conformity with ar ticle 49, paragraph 1 of th e Rules of the Court, it
sets forth the grounds of fact and of law on which the claim contained in
Romania’s Application, filed in the Registry of the Court on 16 September
2004, is based.
1.2 The geographical configuration of the coasts of the two States facing the Black
Sea is shown on Figure 1 (page 8 of this Memorial). Also shown is Serpents’
Island (in Romanian Insula Şerpilor, in Ukrainian Oстров Зміїний), a small
featureless rock some 20 nm off the Danube delta, which was detached from
Romania in 1948 in circumstances descri bed below and which now belongs to
Ukraine.
1.3 The present dispute concerns the delim itation of the boundary of the exclusive
economic zones and continental shelf appertaining to Romania and Ukraine
respectively in the Black Sea.
(2) The Court’s jurisdiction over the dispute
1.4 The Court’s task in the present case is framed and determined by three treaties
concluded between the two States in the period since 1997. They are:
• the Treaty on the Relations of Good Neighbourliness and Co-operation
between Romania and Ukraine, signed at Constan ţa, on 2 June 1997
(hereafter the “Treaty on Relations”); TFPT
TPT Treaty on the Relations of Good Neighbourliness and Co-Operation between Romania and
Ukraine, signed at Constanţa, on 2 June 1997; 2159 United Nations Treaty Series 335 (Annex RM 1).
5 • the Agreement Additional to the Treaty on Relations, concluded by
exchange of letters of the Ministers of Foreign Affairs of the two States,
2
also dated 2 June 1997 (hereafter the “Additional Agreement”); TPFPT
• the Treaty between Romania and Uk raine on the Romanian-Ukrainian
State Border Regime, Collaboration and Mutual Assistance on Border
Matters, signed at Cern ăuţi, on 17 June 2003 (hereafter, the “2003
3
Border Regime Treaty”). TPFPT
The first two agreements entered into force simultaneously on 22 October 1997.
The 2003 Border Regime Treaty entered into force on 27 May 2004. TFPT
1.5 Article 4(h) of the Additional Agreement provides that:
“If these negotiations shall not determine the conclusion of the
above-mentioned agreement [for the maritime boundary] in a
reasonable period of time, but not later than 2 years since their
initiation, the Government of Ro mania and the Government of
Ukraine have agreed that the problem of delimitation of the
continental shelf and the excl usive economic zones shall be
solved by the UN International Court of Justice, at the request of
any of the parties, provided that the Treaty on the regime of the
State border between Romania and Ukraine has entered into
force. However, should the In ternational Court of Justice
consider that the delay of the entering into force of the Treaty on
the regime of the State border is the result of the other Party’s
fault, it may examine the request concerning the delimitation of
the continental shelf and the exclusive economic zones before the
entry into force of this Treaty.”
1.6 Accordingly, pursuant to Article 4(h), there were two prec onditions which had
to be fulfilled before the dispute could be referred to the Court. These were,
first , that the negotiations had not result ed in an agreed delimitation of the
maritime boundary between the two Stat es within two years since their
initiation, and, second , that the treaty relating to the border regime between the
2
TPT Agreement Additional to the Treaty on the Relations of Good Neighbourliness and Co-
Operation between Romania and Ukraine, concluded by exchange of letters between the Ministers of
Foreign Affairs of Romania and Ukraine, done on 2 June 1997; 2159 United Nations Treaty Series 357
(Romanian letter), 363 (Ukrainian counterpart) (Annex RM 2).
TPT Treaty between Romania and Ukraine on the Romanian-Ukrainian State Border Regime,
Collaboration and Mutual Assistance on Border Matters, signed at Cern ặuţi, on 17 June 2003 ( Annex
RM 3). The Treaty was registered with the Secretariat of the United Nations on 10 September 2004 by
Romania, and was assigned registration no. 40547.
TPT See the Protocol on the Exchange of Instruments of Ratification, signed in Mamaia, on 27 May
2004 (Annex RM 4).
6 two States had entered into force. In relation to the second condition, even if
the treaty on the border regime had not entered into force, the dispute could
have been referred to the C ourt by either Party if the delay of entry into force
were due to the fault of the other.
1.7 As noted above, the 2003 Border Regime Treaty entered into force on 27 May
2004, the date of the exchange of the in struments of ratification. Accordingly,
the second condition specified by the Additional Agreement was fulfilled.
1.8 Between 1998 and 2004, 24 rounds of negotiations were held between the
Parties to the present proceedings on th e subject of the establishment of the
maritime boundary, as well as 10 rounds at expert level. As the negotiations did
not result in an agreement on the delimitation of the maritime areas within 2
years from their commencement, the first condition set in the Additional
Agreement was also fulfilled.
1.9 The two conditions specified in article 4( h) of the Additional Agreement being
fulfilled, the Court has jurisdiction over the present dispute between Romania
and Ukraine in accordance with article 36(1) of its Statute.
7Figure 1
General View of the Black Sea (3) Summary of Romania’s Position
1.10 The delimitation upon which the Court is called to rule is to be effected in an
area where - Serpents' Island apart - no major circumstance could pose
problems as to the equitable solution to be achieved. There are no outstanding
territorial claims. The geographical context of the delimitation is a simple one
and the boundary between the maritime zones to which each of the Parties is
entitled can be readily drawn. The agr eements in force between Romania and
Ukraine established clearly the first segment of the maritime boundary, as well
as the principles of delimitation for the remainder of the boundary.
1.11 Taking into account the geographical background, the delimitation needs to be
discussed and determined in two broad sectors. Sector 1 is the sector from the
outer limit of the territorial sea in an easterly direction, defined by a relation of
adjacency between the mainland coasts of Romania and Ukraine. Sector 2 is
dominated by a situation of oppositeness between the mainland coasts of
Romania and Ukraine (Crimean Penins ula) and any maritime boundary will
have a southerly trajectory.
1.12 It should be emphasised that the boundary between the territorial seas of the
Parties is not included in the Applica tion presented to the Court, which only
concerns the delimitation of the Parties’ continental shelf and exclusive
economic zones. The territorial sea bounda ry is the subject of an agreement
between the Parties concluded in 2003: the agreed boundary runs from the last
point of the land boundary between the Pa rties to the point where the 12 nm
arc around Serpents’ Island intersects the Ro manian territorial sea. This part
of the boundary had already been delimited by agreements between Romania
and the USSR, to which Ukraine is bound according to the principles of State
succession, and which had been expressly recognised as binding by Ukraine
following its independence TP.PT
TPT See paras. 4.3-4.26 of Chapter 4 of this Memorial.1.13 The primary issue as to Sector 1 concerns the boundary around Serpents’
Island beyond the territorial sea bounda ry confirmed in 2003, as well as the
area immediately to the eas t of Serpents’ Island. As explained in this
Memorial, the Parties have already agreed that the maritime boundary here
goes around Serpents’ Island in an arc draw n 12 nm (nautical miles) from it.
That arc is depicted on maps agreed between the Parties, as well as maps
published by third States. The issue of the maritime boundary in Sector 1 is
determined by the following considerations:
- the existing agreements in force between the Parties establishing the
trace of the maritime boundary in the vicinity of Serpents’ Island;
- the relevant elements agreed by the Parties in the Additional
Agreement, including Article 121 of the 1982 United Nations
Convention on the Law of the Sea TF(hereafter the “1982
UNCLOS”); the Additional Agreement was concluded at a time
when Article 121, and specifically its paragraph (3), was not
7
binding on the Parties as a matter of treaty law TFPT
- the character of Serpents’ Island as a “rock” in terms of Article
121(3) of the 1982 UNCLOS;
- relevant geographical and other ci rcumstances as set out in this
Memorial.
1.14 Having regard to these considerations, the maritime boundary in the first
sector takes the form of an equidist ance line between the adjacent mainland
coasts of the Parties, qualified by the 12 nm arc drawn around Serpents’
Island. The boundary line departs from that arc at a point practically due east
of Serpents' Island, at approximately 45°14'20''N, 30°29'12''E, then it joins the
equidistance line between the mainland co asts of the Parties at a point at
approximately 45°11'59''N, 30°49'16''E and follows this equidistance line until
6
TPT United Nations Convention on the Law of the Sea, Montego Bay, 10 December 1982, 1833
United Nations Treaty Series 3 (in force 16 November 1994).
TPT At the moment of the entry into force of the Additional Agreement, Ukraine was not a party to
the 1982 UNCLOS. See paras. 8.31-8.35 of this Memorial.
10 it reaches the median line drawn between the opposite coasts of the Parties at
approximately 45°09'45''N., 31°08'40''E.
1.15 Sector 2 concerns the maritime boundary to be drawn between the opposite
coasts of the Parties (the Romanian co astline and the coastline of the Crimean
Peninsula (Ukraine). This sector extends southwards until it reaches maritime
areas attributable to Turkey and Bulg aria. The mainland coasts of the two
Parties in this second sector are approximately parallel, approximately equal in
length and present no special features. That being so, the maritime boundary
is a median line drawn between the opposite coasts in the direction of areas
potentially appertaining to third States.
(4) The structure of this Memorial
1.16 This Memorial consists of twelve chapters, grouped in three parts.
1.17 Part I consists of five chapters outlining the geographical, historical and
diplomatic background to the dispute. Chapter 2 describes the geographical
situation. Chapter 3 outlines the important hist orical background, noting the
strategic significance accorded to Serpents’ Island since at least the 19 PhP
century and detailing the circumstances surrounding its peremptory seizure by
the Soviet Union in 1948. Chapter 4 briefly outlines the maritime boundary
negotiations held between Romania a nd the Soviet Union before 1990 and
between Romania and Ukraine since then. Chapter 5 introduces the
consequences of the historical circumstances upon this case. Chapter 6 sets
out the existing maritime boundary delimitations in the Black Sea.
1.18 Part II consists of two chapters an alysing the applicable law. Chapter 7
describes the treaties which are binding on the Parties and which relate to the
present delimitation. Chapter 8 details the applicable law to which these
treaties refer.
1.19 Part III sets out the maritime boundary which in Romania’s view follows
from the applicable law and which represents an equitable solution. Chapter 9
11 identifies the relevant coasts and the relevant areas. Chapter 10 deals with the
status of Serpents’ Island as a “rock” within the meaning of Article 121(3) of
the 1982 UNCLOS. Chapter 11 deals in turn with th e two sectors referred to
above, detailing the appropriate course of the boundary in each, having regard
to the applicable law. Chapter 12 demonstrates the equitable character of the
boundary so described.
1.20 Filed with this Memorial are 2 volumes of documentary annexes and a volume
of maps (Map Atlas).
12 PARTI
GEOGRAPHICAL , ISTORICAL ANDIPLOMATIC
BACKGROUND CHAPTER 2
THE GEOGRAPHICAL SITUATION
(1) The general geographical setting
2.1 Romania and Ukraine border the Black S ea, an enclosed sea connected with
the Mediterranean by the Bosphorus Stra its via the Sea of Marmara and the
Dardanelles (Çanakkale) Straits, and w ith the Azov Sea by the Kerch Straits.
The Black Sea is situated between 40 º55' and 46º37' N and 27º27' and 41º47'
2 2
E, and has a surface area of some 420,325 km PP(462,535 km Pincluding the
small Azov Sea in its north-eastern part).
2.2 There are no areas of high sea in the Bl ack Sea. All points are within 200 nm
off the coast at least one of the riparian States.
2.3 Six countries border the Black Sea: Ro mania, Bulgaria, Turkey, Georgia,
Russia and Ukraine. Figure 1 (page 8 of this Memorial) shows their
respective coastlines. As can be seen from Figure 1, the Black Sea is roughly
divided by the Crimean Peninsula, wh ich now constitute s an autonomous
republic within Ukraine. The maritim e area within wh ich the Court is
requested to draw the maritime boundary is located in the northern part of the
western basin of the Black Sea. The western basin of the Black Sea is shown
in Figure 2 (page 16 of this Memorial).
2.4 The Romanian coast in the delimitation ar ea can be divided into two distinct
sectors, also shown on Figure 2. These are in the no rth, a shorter, roughly
straight segment, corresponding to the edge of the Danube delta, and in the
south a longer, slightly curved sector. Due to the geographical situation of this
basin, the coasts of Romania and Ukraine are in a relationship of adjacency in
the northern sector whereas in the sout hern sector they are clearly opposite
coasts. Even the coast itself has a di fferentiated aspect: between the Musura
Gulf and the city of Constan ţa it is low with large beaches; towards the south
it is higher, with cliffs reaching 40 meters in height.2.5 The territory of Romania situated be tween the Danube and the Black Sea is
commonly referred to as Dobrogea, and includes most of the Danube delta
(approximately 80% of it). The northernmos t part of the delta is situated on
the Ukrainian territory.
2.6 The seabed in the relevant area represents geologically and geo-
morphologically a single mass. The continental shelf has a continuous
character, descending gra dually towards the south-east, more swiftly in the
south, without major discontinuities.
2.7 On the continental shelf in the western basin of the Black Sea, several
structures with potential gas and oil resources have been identified. They were
extensively explored by the Romanian side during the 70s and 80s.
2.8 There are very few maritime formations in the Black Sea, apart from the tiny
islets in the Bulgarian Gulf of Burgas and the Ukrainian Gulf of Berezan and
Serpents’ Island itself.
15 Figure 2
Western Basin of the Black Sea (2) Brief introduction on Serpents’ Island
8
2.9 Serpents’ Island TFis a maritime feature bordering the adjacent Romanian and
Ukrainian shores in the vicinity of the Danube delta, situated at 45°15'53"N,
30°14'41"E. As shown in Figure 2, it lays at approximately 21 miles from the
nearest point on the Romanian coast.
2P
2.10 Serpents’ Island has an area of 0.17 km P, with a circumference of 1,973 meters
and an irregular shape. It is 662 m l ong (east-west) and 440 m wide (north-
south). It has high and abrupt rocky shores which make it difficult to
approach by sea. These characteris tics can be observed in the photographs
included in this Memorial – see Figures 3 and 4 included in this Chapter (page
9
18 of this Memorial), as well as in Chapter 10 of this Memorial TP. Possessing
no natural water or harvestable resour ces and accordingly entirely dependent
on external supplies, Serpents’ Isla nd has never had a settled population.
Ukrainian officials, in particular the staff of the Ukrainian border police, are
stationed there for periods of time.
2.11 From a geological perspec tive, Serpents’ Island does not have a continental
shelf of its own, being a mere local el evation of the seabed. Geologically,
Serpents’ Island and the Dobrogea landma ss have the same origin. In the
Würm period (ca. 75,000 – 9,800 BC), Serpents’ Island was linked with
Dobrogea by a continuous landmass. Further increases and decreases of the
sea level led to complete submergence of the island, followed by its re-
emergence, which marked the present geology of the island, without effacing
its common origin with the landmass TPPT
TPT “Serpents’ Island” is the name under which th is maritime feature became to be known. Using
this name does not imply any acknowledgment by the Romanian side that this feature could be entitled
to maritime areas other than a maximum 12 nm territorial sea.
9
10T See also Annexes RM 87 to RM 91.
TPPT Vasile Cucu, Gheorghe Vl ăsceanu, Insula Şerpilor (Serpents’ Island), „Viaţa Românească”
Publishing House, Bucharest, 1991 (Annex RM 5), pp. 11-13. Figure 3
Image of Serpents’ Island
- from the 1931 volume of R.I. Călinescu ”Insula Şerpilor. Schiţă
monografică” – see Annex RM 6
Figure 4
Recent picture of Serpents’ Island2.12 The gritstone and quartz conglomerates on Serpents' Island confirm that the
present insular territory belongs to the same kimmeric link as the mountains in
northern Dobrogea. On the remnants of the littoral terrace identified in the
peninsular area in the NE, it was found red lehm ( terra rossa) dating from the
Quaternary, proof that Serpents’ Island was also once covered with terra rossa
and loess – now almost completely washed or blown away. TPFThis could also
be seen in connection with the recent Ukrainian activities which consist in
bringing soil on Serpents’ Island. TPFThe same factors that lead to the complete
disappearance of its soil in past continue to appl y, despite the Ukrainian
demarches meant to change the natural conditions of Serpents’ Island, which
are climatically condemned to failure.
TPPT Vasile Cucu, Gheorghe Vl ăsceanu, Insula Şerpilor (Serpents’ Island), „Viaţa Românească”
Publishing House, Bucharest, 1991 (Annex RM 5), p. 13.
TPPT See paras. 10.101-10.132 of this Memorial. CHAPTER 3
THE HISTORICAL BACKGROUND
13
(1) Earlier period TPFPT
3.1 Serpents’ Island was first mentioned in historical writings relating to the
Greek colonisation of the Black Sea shores in the 7 PhPcentury BC TPF.PT
3.2 Its history is connected to the legend of the Greek hero Achilles, who is said to
have been buried on the island. Remains of a sanctuary built on Serpents’
Island honouring this divinity have been found.
3.3 During the earlier period, Serpents ’ Island is shown, under various names, on
different maps of the Black Sea basi n or of the mouths of the Danube.
Enclosed to this memorial are six such maps, where Serpents’ Island appears
15
under the names of Ilanada (Ilanda, Ilan adasy, Nanada) TPF, Fidonisi
16
(Phidonisi) or Leuce. TPFFPT
(2) The period 1700-1939
th th
3.4 Given the strategic importance of the region, the 18 P Pand 19 P Pcenturies
witnessed continuous rivalry between Russia and the Ottoman Empire over the
mouths of the Danube and th e water routes it provided, as well as the Black
Sea straits. Dobrogea and the Danube delta were integral parts of the Ottoman
Empire. Serpents’ Island, situated immediately off the delta, was likewise part
of the Ottoman Empire.
13
TPPT The historical evolution of the geo-political situation at the mouths of the Danube, including
Serpents’ Island, is relevant in order to understand the context of the delimitation of the maritime areas
of Romania and Ukraine in the Black Sea.
14
TPPT Historical sources point to the existence of close links between harbours established by Greek
settlers on the western coast of the Black Sea and the indigenous populations of the mainland, the
15ythians and the Gets, forebears of the Romanian people.
TPPT Meaning “Serpents’ Island” in Turkish.
16
TPPT See Maps RM A1, RM A2, RM A3, RM A4, RM A5 and RM A6 in the Map Atlas.3.5 In 1812, by the Peace Treaty of Bucharest, TPFFRussia annexed the eastern part
of Moldova (which was known as Bessara bia), thus becoming a riparian State
on the Danube. The frontier between Russia (Bessarabia) and Turkey
(Dobrogea) was established on the Kilia arm of the Danube, on either side of
the Ochakov channel (in the north of the secondary delta of the Kilia arm). TPFFPT
Serpents’ Island was unaffected.
3.6 In 1829 when, by the Treaty of Adri anopole, concluded between the Ottoman
19
Empire and the triumphant Russia on 2/14 September 1829, TPFFthe two States
established the frontier between them on the Saint George arm of the Danube
(the southernmost arm in the Danube de lta). Article III of the Treaty stated
that Bessarabia and the whole Danube de lta would become Russian territory.
Although the Treaty did not contain any di rect reference to Serpents’ Island
and did not provide for its inclusion within the Russian territory, Russia
assumed control over Serpents’ Island and in 1842 built a lighthouse on the
island in order to assist navigation in the Black Sea.
3.7 Article XX of the General Treaty of Peace of 30 March 1856 (the Treaty of
Paris) concluded after the Crimean War, provided for the Russian retrocession
of part of Bessarabia and the Danube delta to the Ottoman Empire. Article
XXI annexed the area thereby retroceded to the Principality of Moldova. By
Articles XXII and XXIII the Romanian Principalities of Moldova and
Walachia were guaranteed autonomy under the suze rainty of the Ottoman
20
Empire. TPFFPT
3.8 The Treaty of Paris did not make expre ss reference to the status of Serpents’
TPPT Treaty of Peace between Russia and Turkey, Bucharest, 16(28) May 1812, reproduced in
18nsolidated Treaty Series , vol. 62, p. 25.
TPPT Ibid., Article 4.
TPPT Treaty of Peace between Russia and Turkey, Adrianopole, 2/14 September 1829, reproduced
in Consolidated Treaty Series, vol. 80, p. 83; Martens, Nouveau Recueil des Traités, vol. VIII, p. 143;
British and Foreign State Papers, vol. XVI, p. 647; E. Hertslet, The Map of Europe by Treaty (London,
Butterworths/Harrison, 1875), vol. II (1828-1863), p. 813.
20
TPPT General Treaty for the Re-Establishment of Peace between Austria, France, Great Britain,
Prussia, Sardinia and Turkey, and Russia, Paris, 18/30 March 1856, reproduced in Consolidated Treaty
21 Island. The issue was regulated by the Protocol concluded on 6 January 1857
in Paris between the representatives of the European Powers parties to the
Treaty of Paris. TPFPThis was the first international agreement expressly to
mention Serpents’ Island. It stated as follows:
“Islands in Delta of the Danu be to be replaced under
Sovereignty of Turkey.
The Plenipotentiaries agree that the Islands included between
the different branches of the Danube at its mouth, and forming
the Delta of that River, as shown by the Plan No.2 hereunto
annexed, and initialled, shall, in stead of being annexed to the
Principality of Moldavia, as stipulated by Article XXI of the
Treaty of Paris, be replaced under the immediate Sovereignty
of the Sublime Porte, of which they formerly held.
Isle of Serpents to be an Appendage of Delta of the Danube.
The Plenipotentiaries agree, more over, that the Treaty of Paris
having, like the Treaties previous ly concluded between Russia
and Turkey, been silent with regard to the Isle of Serpents, that
Island is to be considered as an appendage to the Delta of the
Danube, and must, in consequence follow its destination.
Lighthouse to be maintained on Isle of Serpents.
In the general interest of maritime commerce, the Ottoman
Government engages to maintain on that Island a Lighthouse
destined to render secure the navigation of vessels proceeding
to the Danube and to the Po rt of Odessa; the River
Commission, established by Artic le XVII of the Treaty of
Paris, for the purpose of maintain ing the Mouths of that River,
and the neighbouring parts of the Se a, in a navigable state, will
see to the regular performan ce of the service of such
Lighthouse.
Protocol to have the force of a Convention. Boundary
Convention to be signed.
Series, vol. 114, p. 409; Martens, Nouveau Recueil Général, vol. XV, p. 770; British and Foreign State
Papers, vol. XLVI, p. 8; Hertslet,The Map of Europe by Treaty, vol. II (1828-1863), p. 1250.
TPPT Protocol of Conference fixing the Boundaries of Russia, the Principalities and Turkey,
between Austria, France, Great Britain, Prussia, Russia, Sardinia and Turkey , Paris, 6 January 1857,
reproduced in Consolidated Treaty Series , vol. 116, p. 155, Martens, Nouveau Recueil Général , vol.
XV, p. 793; British and Foreign State Papers , vol. XLVII, p. 92; Hertslet, The Map of Europe by
Treaty, vol. II (1828-1863), p. 1298.
22 The present Protocol shall have the same force and validity as
if it had assumed the form of a Convention; but it is understood
that, when the Boundary Commi ssion shall have concluded its
labours a Convention shall be signed by the High Contracting
Parties recording the Frontier such as it shall have been
established by the Commissioners, and the resolutions taken on
the subject of the Isle of Serpents and the Delta of the Danube.”
3.9 Annex 2 to the Protocol was a map showing the delta of the Danube stretching
from the Kilia Channel in the north to the St George’s Channel in the south,
with Serpents’ Island shown off-shore as appurtenant to the delta. TPFPT
3.10 As expressly envisaged in the Protoc ol, these provisions were embodied in a
further Treaty relative to the Frontier in Bessarabia, the Isle of Serpents, and
23
the Delta of the Danube, signed at Paris on 19 June 1857. TPFPThis provided
relevantly as follows:
“Islands at Mouths of the D anube to be under Sovereignty of
Sultan of Turkey.
ART.II. The Contracting Powers agree that the Islands
included between the different branches of the Danube at its
mouth, and forming the Delta of that river, as shown by the
th
Plan annexed to the Protocol of the 6 P Pof January, 1857, shall,
instead of being annexed to the Principality of Moldavia, as
implied in the stipulations of Article XXI of the Treaty of Paris,
be replaced under the immediat e Sovereignty of the Sublime
Porte, of which they formerly held.
Turkish sovereignty over Island of Serpents.
ART.III. The Treaty of the 30 PhPMarch, 1856, having, like
the Treaties previously concl uded between Russia and Turkey,
22
TPPT Parliamentary Papers, 1857, Sess. 1, vol. XVII, p. 145. The map is also reproduced in
Hertslet, The Map of Europe by Treaty , vol. II (1828-1863), following p. 1301 ( Map RM A 8 in the
Map Atlas).
TPPT Treaty between Austria, France, Great Britain, Prussia, Russia, Sardinia and Turkey relative to
the Frontier in Bessarabia, the Isle of Serpents and the Danube Delta, Paris, 19 June 1857; reproduced
in Consolidated Treaty Series, vol. 117, p. 59, Martens, Nouveau Recueil Général, vol. XVI(2), p. 11;
British and Foreign State Papers , vol. XLVII, p. 60; Hertslet, The Map of Europe by Treaty , vol. II
(1828-1863), p. 1320. See also the Definitive Act of the Commissioners […] relative to the Bessarabian
Frontier, Kichineff, 30 March/11 April 1957, Consolidated Treaty Series , vol. 116, p. 455, Martens,
Nouveau Recueil Général , vol. XX, p. 4; British and Foreign State Papers , vol. L, p. 1020; and
Hertslet, The Map of Europe by Treaty , vol. II (1828-1863), p. 1313, with accompanying maps ( Map
RM A 7 in the Map Atlas)
23 been silent with regard to the Isle of Serpents, and the High
Contracting Parties having agreed that it was proper to consider
that Island as a dependency of the Delta of the Danube, its
destination is fixed according to the arrangement of the
preceding Article.
Maintenance by Turkey of Lighthouse on Island of Serpents.
ART.IV. In the general inte rest of maritime commerce,
the Sublime Porte engages to maintain on the Isle of Serpents a
Lighthouse destined to afford se curity to the navigation of
vessels proceeding to the Danube and to the port of Odessa.
The River Commission establis hed by Article XVII of the
th
Treaty of the 30 P Pof March, 1856, for the purpose of
maintaining the mouths of that river and the neighbouring parts
of the sea in a navigable state, will see to the regular
performance of the service of such Lighthouse.”
24 25
3.11 The next development of note TPFwas the Treaty of Berlin of 13 July 1878. TPFFPT
By Article 43 the parties recognised th e independence of Romania, subject to
certain conditions. Articles 45 and 46 provided as follows:
“Art.XLV. The Principality of Roumania restores to His
Majesty the Emperor of Russia th at portion of the Bessarabian
territory detached from Russia by the Treaty of Paris of 1856,
bounded on the west by the mid-channel of the Pruth, and on
the south by the mid-channel of the Kilia Branch and the Stary-
Stamboul mouth.
Art. XLVI. The islands forming the Delta of the Danube, as
well as the Isle of Serpents are added to Roumania. The
Principality receives in addition the territory situated to the
TPPT In the meantime, following th e double election of Alexandru Ioan Cuza as prince of Moldova
(5 January 1859) and Walachia (24 January 1859), the two Romanian principalities merged to form a
25itary State, officially named Romania.
TPPT Treaty between Austria-Hungary, France, Germ any, Great Britain, Ital y, Russia and Turkey
for the Settlement of Affairs in the East, Berlin, 13 July 1978, reproduced in Consolidated Treaty
Series, vol. 153, p. 171; Martens, Nouveau Recueil Général des Traités (2 PdSeries), vol. III, p. 449;
British and Foreign State Papers , vol. LXIX, p. 749; Hertslet, The Map of Europe by Treaty
(HMSO/Harrison, 1891), vol. IV (1875-1891), p. 2759.
By Art. XIX of the Pr eliminary Treaty of Peace between Russia and Turkey , San Stefano, 19
February/3 March 1878, ( Consolidated Treaty Series , vol. 152, p. 395; British and Foreign State
nd
Papers, vol. LXIX, p. 732; Martens Nouveau Recueil Général des Traités (2 P Series), vol. III, p. 246;
Hertslet, The Map of Europe by Treaty, vol. IV (1875-1891), p. 2672), Russia, although consenting to
accept cession of certain territories (including Serpen ts’ Island) as a substitute for the payment of war
reparations, declared that it did not wish to annex the delta, the delta islands and Serpents’ Island, and
“se reserve la faculté de les échanger contra la par tie de la Bessarabie détachée par le Traité de 1856”
[“reserves the right of exchanging them for the part of Bessarabia detached by the Treaty of 1856” (i.e.
the Treaty of Paris)].
24 south of the Dobroutcha as far as a line starting from the east of
Silistria and terminating on the Black Sea, south of Mangalia.
The frontier line shall be determined on the spot by the
European Commission appointed for the delimitation of
Bulgaria.”
3.12 No map was attached to the Treaty of Berlin, but the situation of Serpents’
Island was perfectly clear from the text. The reproduction of the English
language translation of the Trea ty of Berlin in Hertslet’s The Map of Europe
26
by Treaty TPFFappends maps which show the boundary so drawn, with Serpents’
Island appertaining to Romania.
3.13 It is significant that, although the Treaty retroceded to Russia “that portion of
the Bessarabian territory detached fr om Russia by the Treaty of Paris of
1856”, this territory did not include the delta islands or Serpents’ Island.
3.14 Following the Treaty of Berlin, a bilateral Commission reached partial
agreement on the demarcation of the boundary in the delta region, and the
27
demarcation was recorded in a Pr ocès Verbal of 5/17 December 1878. TTFPTT
Although some of the places and islands mentioned in the Procès Verbal can
be located with certainty on modern ma ps, others cannot, the coastline here
having changed substantially since 1878 due to the accretion of the delta. But
like the Treaty of Berlin itself, the Procès Verbal of 17 December 1878 did not
affect Serpents’ Island.
3.15 Due to its importance for security in this area, during th e First World War,
Serpents’ Island was scene of several war episodes, such as the bombing of the
lighthouse by German forces, its occupa tion by Russian soldiers and the
TPPHertslet, The Map of Europe by Treaty, vol. IV (1875-1891), maps following pp. 2790 and
2798 (Map RM A 9 in the Map Atlas)
TPPT Procès-Verbal of the Commission (Roumania and Russia) for the Delimitation of the Territory
retroceded to Russia by Art. XLV of the Treaty of Berlin, Bucharest, 5/17 December 1878, reproduced
in Consolidated Treaty Series, vol. 153, p. 495; British and Foreign State Papers , vol. LXX, p. 693;
Hertslet, The Map of Europe by Treaty, vol. IV (1875-1891), p. 2842.
25 sinking of a Russian torpedo-carrier by German mines TPF.PT
3.16 Bessarabia again became part of Romania following a decision taken on 9
April 1918 by the Bessarabian State Assembly ( Sfatul Ţării). Russia did not
formally accept the re-union of Bessarabi a with Romania. This controversy
does not, however, affect Serpents’ Island.
3.17 To summarise, since the 1878 Berlin Peace Treaty, that formally consecrated
Romania’s independence, until the outbreak of World War II, Serpents’ Island
was under Romanian sovereignty. It was not treated as part of Bessarabia, but
was acknowledged to be appurtenant to the Danube delta (the area from St
George’s Mouth in the south to the Kilia Mouth in the north). As mentioned
above, there was multilateral recognitio n in the Protocol of 1857 and the
subsequent treaty on the fr ontier that Serpents’ Isla nd was appurtenant to the
delta.
3.18 It may be noted that the Europe an Danube Commission (headquartered in
Galatz (Galaţi), Romania) undertook some work s on Serpents’ Island as part
of its mandate to maintain the conditi ons for navigation on the Danube. In
particular it rebuilt the beacon on Serpents’ Island which served for
navigational purposes before the Second World War. TPFPT
3.19 The attention given by the European pow ers to the mouths of the Danube (the
Danube delta) and to Serpents’ Island, shown by the conclu sion of these
instruments, is a proof of the geo-strate gic importance of these regions at that
time.
28
TPPT See R.I. Calinescu, Insula Şerpilor. Schi ţă monografic ă (Serpents’ Island. Monographic
Study), published in the Analele Dobrogei magazine, “Glasul Bucovinei” Publishing House, Cern ăuţi,
1931 (Annex RM 6), pp. 50-51.
29
TPPT Ibid., p. 50.
26 (3) Serpents’ Island in and after World War II
3.20 After the outbreak of the Second Wo rld War, the Soviet Union took the
opportunity to reassert its claim over Bessarabia, adding to it a new claim to
part of Bukovina. Following the conc lusion of the Ribbentrop-Molotov Pact
and its secret additional protocol TPF, a Soviet ultimatum was sent to the
Romanian Government of 26 June 1940. It stated as follows:
“The Soviet Government consider s that the issue of the return
of Bessarabia is organically linked with the issue of the handing
over to the USSR of that part of Bukovina where the population
is linked in its great majority with the Soviet Ukraine by the
common historical destiny as well as by the language
community and national composition. Such an act would be
justified since the handing over of the northern part of
Bukovina to the USSR could repr esent, even though to a small
degree, a means of compensation of that great loss caused to
the USSR and Bessarabian population by the 22 years of
Romanian domination of Bessarabia.
The USSR Government proposes to the Royal Government of
Romania:
1. to return Bessarabia to the Soviet Union;
2. to hand over to the Soviet Union the northern part of
Bukovina with the borders in accordance with the
enclosed map.
The Soviet Government hopes th at the Romanian Government
will accept the present proposals of the USSR and this will give
an opportunity to peacefully solve the long-lasting conflict
31
between USSR and Romania.” TPFFPT
The Soviet ultimatum did not include any demand in relation to Serpents’
Island.
TPPT The Pact and its additional protocol established the sphères d’influence of Germany and the
USSR in Europe. Its conclusion and arbitrary character were condemned both by the Soviet/ Russian
authorities (e.g. the Decision of the Congress of the People’s Deputies regarding the legal and political
aspects of the 1939 Russ o-German Non-Aggression Pact, adop ted on 24 December 1989) and in the
bilateral Romanian-Russian framework (e.g., in the Joint Declaration of the ministries of foreign affairs
of Romania and the Russian Federation, signed at Moscow on 4 July 2003) and internationally (e.g.,
tP
31e recent statements made with the occasion of the 50 P anniversary of the conclusion of Word War II).
TPPT Note of 27 June 1940 to the Romanian Mission in Moscow (Annex RM 7).
273.21 In response Romania proposed a meeting to discuss the situation. In a Soviet
note of 28 June 1940 the Soviet Government rejected the reply as “unclear”
because it had failed to accept the S oviet proposition, and it set down a
32
timetable for Romanian withdrawal. TPFPT
3.22 Romania had no choice but to accept this timetable, and, in the response to the
note of 28 June 1940, accepted the withdrawal of the Romanian administration
33
from Bessarabia and Northern Bukovina. TPFPSerpents’ Island was not included
in the said territory.
3.23 In August 1940, the Moldavian Soviet Socialist Republic was founded on part
of the territory ceded to the USSR by Romania. The southern part of
Bessarabia was not included in the territo ry of the newly-established Soviet
Socialist Republic but was incorporated into the territory of the Ukrainian
Soviet Socialist Republic.
3.24 Work began on delimitation of the resulting boundary but was stopped in
November 1940 when Soviet troops occ upied certain islands in the Danube
delta (but not Serpents’ Island). In 1941 the Romanian army evicted the
Soviet army from those positions.
3.25 During World War II, Serpents’ Island had a strategic role. On 22 June 1941 it
entered under the rule of the Commandment of the German forces in the Black
Sea and was occupied by German troops. The areas of Serpents’ Island and of
the mouths of the Danube were thea tre of naval operations between 1941 and
1944 TPFPT
3.26 After the end of Word War II, the Treaty of Peace between the Allied and
32
TPPT See the Note of 28 June 1940 to the Romanian Mission in Moscow (Annex RM 8).
TPPT See the Note of 28 June 1940 of the Romanian Mission in Moscow (Annex RM 9).
TPPT See major (retired) Silviu Ştefănescu, Din amintirile veteranilor (War Veterans’ Memories) ,
published in Revista de istorie militar ă (Military History Magazine) , issue no. 3(31)/1995, p. 48
(Annex RM 10).
28 35
Associated Powers and Romania was signed at Paris on 10 February 1947. TPFFPT
Part I provided as follows:
“FRONTIERS
Article 1
The frontiers of Roumania, s hown on the map annexed to the
present Treaty (Annex I) shall be those which existed on
January 1, 1941, with the ex ception of the Roumanian-
Hungarian frontier, which is defi ned in Article 2 of the present
Treaty.
The Soviet Roumanian frontier is thus fixed in accordance with
the Soviet Roumanian Agreement of June 28, 1940, and the
Soviet-Czechoslovak Agreement of June 29, 1945.”
3.27 The annexed map, on a scale of 1:1,500,000, which formed an integral part of
the Peace Treaty, shows the boundary proceeding down the Danube to the sea.
The text of the Treaty has no express pr ovision relating to Serpents’ Island,
which accordingly remained under the s overeignty of Romania. The map
annexed to the Peace Treaty showed Serpents’ Island as forming part of
Romania. TPFPT
(4) The Events of 1948
3.28 In order to precisely describe the trace of the Romanian-Soviet boundary, on 4
February 1948, a Protocol to Specify th e Line of the State Boundary between
the People’s Republic of Romania and the Union of Soviet Socialist Republics
was concluded. TPFFPDespite the provisions of the Paris Peace Treaty, Article 1
described the boundary, in relevant part, in the following terms:
“b/ In accordance with Annex II:
along the River Danube, from Pardina to the Black Sea, leaving
the islands of T ătaru Mic, Daleru Mic and Mare, Maican and
TPP42 United Nations Treaty Series 3.
TPPSee Map RM A 10 in the Map Atlas.
37
TPPT Protocol to Specify the Line of the State Boundary between the People’s Republic of Romania
and the Union of Soviet Socialist Republics, signed at Moscow, on 4 February 1948 (Annex RM 11).
29 Limba on the side of the Uni on of the SSR, and the islands
Tătaru Mare, Cernovca and Babina - on the Romanian side;
Serpents’ Island, situated in th e Black Sea, eastwards from the
Danube mouth, is incorporated into the Union of the SSR .”
(emphasis added).
3.29 On 23 May 1948, a procès verbal was signed by the Deputy Foreign Minister
of Romania and the First Secretary of the Soviet Embassy. Actually signed on
Serpents’ Island, it provided in relevant part as follows:
“Acknowledging that today, at 12 h ours (local time), Serpent's
Island or Zmeinyj […], has been returned to the Soviet Union
by the People's Republic of Roma nia and integrated within the
territory of the Union of the Soviet Socialist Republics, by
signing this procès verbal the legal formali38es of the handing
over of the island have been fulfilled.” TPFPT
3.30 It should be stressed th at the term “returned” us ed by the language of the
procès verbal was not appropriate, as Serpents’ Island had never belonged to
the USSR.
3.31 After being incorporated into the Soviet territory, against the provisions of the
1947 Paris Peace Treaty, Serpents’ Island was transformed into a military
post, under the direct control of the cen tral military authorities in Moscow.
This underlines the geo-strategic reasons for which the USSR decided to
occupy Serpents’ Island, which represented an avant-poste in the Black Sea,
situated at the mouths of the Danube.
3.32 The legal status of Serpen ts’ Island as a Soviet territory is unclear, as there is
no public document providing for its incl usion within the territory of any
Soviet republic. It was only after the dissolution of the USSR that Serpents’
Island became formally part of the territory of the newly-independent Ukraine.
TPPT See the Procès verbal of Delivery-Reception, signed on Serpents’ Island, on 23 May 1948
(Annex RM 12).
30 CHAPTER 4
MARITIME BOUNDARY NEGOTIATIONS AFTER 1948
(1) Introduction
4.1. Since 1948, Romania has conducted negotiations on the issue of the
delimitation of the maritime areas in the Black Sea successively with the
Soviet Union and, after its independen ce in 1991, with Ukra ine. As these
negotiations did not produce agreement (i n particular in the area to the east
and south-east of Serpents’ Island), they are essentially of historical relevance.
On the other hand, successive agreemen ts were concluded with the Soviet
Union (by which Ukraine is bound as succ essor) concerning the area between
the land boundary and Serpents’ Island and as to the extent of the maritime
boundary going around Serpents’ Island. Moreover, although no progress of
any kind was made in the post-1997 negotiations with Ukraine on the location
of the exclusive economic zones and continental shelf boundary, the two
Parties did agree in 1997 on the criteria to be applied in those negotiations.
4.2. Romania does not rely on unperfected negotiations as a basis for the maritime
boundary it claims. On the other hand it does rely on the agreements reached
with the Soviet Union as to the maritime boundary around Serpents’ Island in
the first sector, and with Ukraine as to the criteria to be applied in delimiting
the remainder of the maritime boundary. For these purposes the course of the
negotiations leading to these agreements is relevant and is described in this
Chapter. The legal consequences of the agreements reached are analysed in
later chapters.
(2) Negotiations and agreements concluded with the Soviet Union
(a) The land border and the maritime boundary around Serpents’ Island
4.3. The land border and a significant part of the maritime boundary was
demarcated in 1948-1949 and the dema rcation incorporated in a single
document, the Procès Verbal of the De scription of the State Border Line
between the People’s Republic of Roma nia and the Union of the Soviet Socialist Republics, signed by the Jo int Soviet-Romanian Demarcation
Commission on 27 September 1949 (hereaf ter, the “September 1949 Procès
Verbal”).
4.4. According to the September 1949 Procès Verbal, the land and river border is
continued at sea by a maritime boundary, joining the final point of the river
border (Point 1437) with two successive signs (a buoy and a beacon)
representing the final border signs established by that Procès Verbal.
Specifically these were Point 1438 - buoy at 45 °11'34.97"N, 29°41'28.56"E,
and Point 1439 - beacon at 45 °08'59.21"N, 29°57'39.42"E, the latter being
situated on the 12-nm arc surrounding Serpents’ Island.
4.5. Thus, the September 1949 Procès Verbal provides in relevant part:
“From the border sign no. 1437 the boundary goes through the
middle of the Musuna (Musura) channel, in a south-south-east
direction, until the mouth of the Musuna (Musura) channel, on
the alignment no. 1, leaving Limba Island on the USSR side,
and the island no. 3 on the P.R.R. [Peoples’ Republic of
Romania] side, going to the border sign no. 1438 (buoy).
The border sign no. 1438 (buoy) is fixed (anchored) in water, in
the point of the change of the direction of the boundary line in
the Black Sea.
…
The border sign no. 1439 (beacon), is fixed in water, in the
point where the State boundary line going through the Black
Sea changes its direction, at the intersection of the straight line
going from the border sign no. 1438 (buoy) on the azimuth of
102°30',0, with the outer exterior margin of the Soviet marine
boundary zone, of 12 miles, surrounding Serpents’ Island.” TPFPT
The coordinates of border sign 1439 were then set out. After specifying the
distance between Points 1438 and 1439, the description continued:
“The State boundary line, fr om the border sign no. 1439
(beacon), goes on the exterior marg in of the marine boundary
zone, of 40 miles, leaving Serpents’ Isla nd on the side of the
USSR.” TPF(emphasis added)
TPPT Procès Verbal of the Description of the State Border Line between the People’s Republic of
Romania and the Union of the Soviet Socialist Republics, demarcated in 1948-1949, signed at
Bucharest, on 27 September 1949, volume III (Annex RM 13), pp. 900-901.
TPPT Ibid., p. 902
32 41
4.6. The map annexed to the September 1949 Procès Verbal TPFdepicts the boundary
so drawn, although only a small segment of the circle around Serpents’ Island
is shown.
4.7. Similarly, the individual Procès Verbal of Description of Border Sign 1438
(buoy) dated 27 September 1949 establishes that
“the boundary line, from the border sign no. 1437, passes on
the middle of watershed of th e Musuna (Musura) channel,
towards south-south-east, till the mouth of the Musuna
(Musura) channel, then on the alignment no.1, leaving the
island of Limba on the USSR side and the island no.3 on the
Romanian PR side, to the border sign no.1438 (buoy), and from
the border sign no.1438 (buoy), the State boundary in the Black
Sea passes in a straight line, on the azimuth of 102 °30',0', till it
reaches the exterior margin of the Soviet marine boundary
zone, of 12 miles, surrounding Se rpents’ Island, to the border
sign no. 1439 (beacon).” TPFFPT
4.8. The individual Procès Verbal of De scription of Border Sign 1439 (beacon)
dated 27 September 1949 stipulates that:
“the boundary line, from the border sign no. 1438 (buoy) passes
in the Black Sea, in a straight line, on the azimuth of 102°30’,0,
till it reaches the exterior margin of the Soviet marine boundary
zone, of 12 miles, surrounding Se rpents’ Island, to the border
sign no. 1439 (beacon) and from the border sign no. 1439
(beacon), the boundary passes on the exterior margin of the
Soviet marine boundary zone , of 12 miles , leaving Serpents’
43
Island on the USSR side.” TPFF(emphasis added).
4.9. The words in italics in the official languages of the September 1949 Procès
Verbal of Description of Border Sign 1439 (beacon) read as follows:
in Romanian, “ frontiera trece pe marginea exterioar ă a zonei sovietice de
frontieră marină, de 12 mile”;
in Russian, “ граница проходит по внешней линии 12- мильной морской
пограничной полосы”.
41
TPPT Map RM A 11 in the Map Atlas.
TPPT Procès Verbal of Border Sign no. 1438 (buoy), signed at Bucharest, on 27 September 1949
(Annex RM 14).
43
TPPT Procès Verbal of Border Sign no. 1439 (beacon), signed at Bucharest, on 27 September 1949
(Annex RM 15).
33 The meaning is clear and the different language versions are to the same
effect. There is a 12 mile Soviet ma rine zone going around Serpents’ Island,
and the 12 mile arc constitutes the “exterior margin” (“ marginea exterioară”;
“внешней линии”) of this zone.
4.10. Both individual Procès Verbaux of De scription of Border Signs 1438 and
1439 include bilingual (Romanian and Russian) sketches (see Figures 5 and 6
– pages 36, 37 of this Memorial) which form integral parts of them, and these
clearly show the boundary and the position of the two border signs.
4.11. It should be emphasised that the Se ptember 1949 Procès Verbal and the
individual Procès Verbal of Descrip tion of Border Sign 1439 (beacon) do not
refer to a 12-mile territorial sea, bu t to a “marine boundary zone” of 12 miles
of the USSR. There is no suggestion th at beyond this 12 nm arc there is a
further maritime zone appertaining to Serpents’ Island and cutting across the
front of the Romanian coast.
4.12. The next event of relevance occurred on 25 November 1949 in Moscow when
a Treaty was concluded between the Gove rnment of the People’s Republic of
Romania and the Government of the USSR on the Regime of the Romanian-
Soviet State Border (hereafter, the “1949 Border Regime Treaty”). TPFPChapter
I dealt with the border line, border signs and border maintenance. Article 1
provided:
“The State border line between the People’s Republic of
Romania and the Union of the Soviet Socialist Republics, fixed
in accordance with Article 1 of the Peace Treaty with Romania,
entered into force on 15 September 1947, and with the Protocol
[of 4 February 1948] passes in the field as it is determined in
the demarcation documents signed on 27 September 1949, at
Bucharest, by the Joint Sovi et-Romanian Commission for the
Demarcation of the State Border between the People’s Republic
of Romania and the Union of the Soviet Socialist Republics.”
4.13. The delimitation set out in the Sept ember 1949 Procès Verbal was thereby
embodied in the 1949 Border Regime Treaty.
44
TPPT Treaty between the Government of the People’s Republic of Romania and the Government of
the USSR on the Regime of the Romanian-Soviet State Border, sign ed at Moscow on 25 November
1949, pp. 1-2 (Annex RM 16).
344.14. In the period subsequent to 1949, seve ral further bilateral Romanian-Soviet
instruments were concluded, under which the maritime boundary between
what is now Ukraine and Romania was affirmed. No agreement suggested any
possible change to the position of th e boundary located on the 12 mile arc
around Serpents’ Island.
4.15. Thus, between 1952 and 1954, as a result of the re-location of certain border
posts and the calculation of new technical data, several bilateral documents
were signed by the border authorized officers of the two countries. Such a new
document, entitled “Act” (“ Act” in Romanian, “ Акт” in Russian), was also
concluded for the border sign 1439, as the beacon located there had
disappeared. The Act, signed in Ismail on 26 December 1954, uses practically
the same language as the 1949 individual Procès Verbal of Border Sign 1439.
It reads, in relevant part, as follows:
“the boundary line [,] from th e border sign no.1438 (buoy), passes
in the Black Sea, in a straight line, on the azimuth of 102°30’,0, till
it reaches the exterior margin of the marine boundary zone of 12
miles of the Union of the Soviet Socialist Republics surrounding
Serpents’ Island, to the border sign no.1439 (beacon) and from the
border sign no. 1439 (beacon), the boundary passes on the exterior
margin of the Soviet marine boundary zone of 145miles , leaving
Serpents’ Island on the USSR side.” FP F(emphasis added).
TPPT Act signed by the Border Authorized Officer of the People’s Republic of Romania for the
Tulcea sector and the Border Authorized Officer of the Union of the Soviet Socialist Republics for the
Ismail sector in Ismail on 26 December 1954 (Annex RM 17).
35 Figure 5
Sketch included in the Procès Verbal of Border
Point no. 1438, signed at Bucharest, on 27
September 1949 Figure 6
Sketch included in the Procès Verbal of Border
Point no. 1439, signed at Bucharest, on 27
September 19494.16. On 27 February 1961, a Treaty was concluded between the governments of
Romania and the USSR on the regime of the Romanian-Soviet State Border
(hereafter, the “1961 Border Regime Treaty”) TFP; it was expressed to be a
replacement for the 1949 Border Regi me Treaty. No modification occurred
with regard to the border between the two Parties. Thus, Chapter I, dealing
with the border line, border signs and border maintenance, specified:
“The State border line between the People’s Republic of
Romania and the Union of the Soviet Socialist Republics,
settled according to Article 1 of the Peace Treaty with
Romania, entered into force on 15 September 1947 and to the
Protocol [of 4 February 1948] passes in the field as described
in:
(a) …
(b) the demarcation documents signed on 27 September
1949 in Bucharest by the Joint Romanian-Soviet Border
Commission for the Demarca tion of the State Border
line between the People’ Re public of Romania and the
Union of the Soviet Socialist Republics;
(c) the annexes and the additions to the documents with
respect to the demarcation of the Romanian-Soviet State
border line, which may be c oncluded during the period
of validity of this Treaty.”
4.17. Accordingly, the delimitation recorded in the 1949 Procès Verbal (and
confirmed by the 1954 Act) was expressly incorporated by reference.
4.18. A demarcation process was carried out between 1961 and 1962 as envisaged
by the 1961 Border Regime Treaty. The final document (hereafter the “1963
Procès Verbal”), was accompanied by individual procès verbaux describing
the position of each of the defined points, including sketches and enclosed
maps. As for the border sign no. 1439, no modification occurred and no new
Procès Verbal was concluded for this sign.
4.19. However, the general description of the boundary reads, in its relevant parts,
the following:
TPPT Treaty between the Government of the People's Republic of Romania and the Government of
the Union of Soviet Socialist Republics on the Romanian-Soviet State Border Regime, Collaboration
and Mutual Assistance on Border Matters (with Procès Verbal), signed at Bucharest on 27 February
1961 (Annex RM 18 ). The treaty was registered with the S ecretariat of the United Nations on 10
September 2004 by Romania, and was assigned registration no. 40546. “From the border sign no. 1438 (buoy), the State boundary
passes in the Black Sea in a straight line on the azimuth of
102°30’,0, to the border sign no. 1439 (beacon).
The border sign no. 1439 (beacon) is fixed in water, in the
point where the State boundary line going through the Black
Sea changes its direction, at the intersection of the straight line
going from the border sign no. 1438 (buoy) on the azimuth of
102°30,'0 with the exterior margin of the Soviet territorial sea
of 12 miles, around Serpents’ Island.
…
From the border sign no.1439 (b eacon), the State boundary
passes on the exterior margin of the 12-mile territorial sea of
47
the USSR, leaving Serpents’ Island on the USSR side” TF .PT
4.20. The individual Procès Ve rbal of Border Sign 1438 uses generally the same
language as the one concluded in 1949. The only change of language consists
in provisions concerning the attribu tion of some newly formed Danubian
islets TPPTwhile the 1949 individual Procès Verbal of Border Sign 1439
remained in force, as no factual change occurred since its conclusion.
4.21. The 1963 Procès Verbal was the first time that the “Soviet marine zone” of 12
miles around Serpents’ Island is referred to as a “territorial sea”. But there is
no suggestion in the documents of the period that this change in terminology
produced any change of substance or that it had the effect of an implicit claim
by the Soviet Union to maritime areas to the south of the 12 nm line.
4.22. The next demarcation process was car ried out in the 1970s, on different
sectors of the Romanian-Soviet borde r. The work carried out between 1972
and 1973 covered the southern sector of the common border and resulted in
further Procès Verbaux for each boundary point, as well as a subsequent
Procès Verbal which summarised them all. In the general description, this
Procès Verbal kept the language of the 1963 Procès Verbal, reading that
TPPT Procès Verbal of Description of the State Border Line between the People’s Republic of
Romania and the Union of the Soviet Socialist Republics on Rivers Tur, Tisa, Prut and Danube, drafted
on the Basis of the Verification Effected in 1961-19 62 in Sectors where Modifications as Compared to
the 1948-1949 Demarcation Documents Occurred, signed at Iaşi, on 20 August 1963 (Annex RM 19),
p. 110.
TPPT See the Procès Verbal of Border Sign no. 1438 (buoy), signed at Ia şi, on 20 August 1963
(Annex RM 20).
39 “From the border sign no.1439 (beacon), the State boundary
passes on the exterior margin of the 12-mile territorial sea of
the USSR, leaving Serpents’ Island on the USSR side” FP9.PT
4.23. The individual Procès Verbal rela ting to Point 1439 was concluded on 4
September 1974. As with the individual Pr ocès Verbal relating to Point 1439
from 1949, it referred to the “Soviet marine boundary zone”. It provided:
“This border sign is fixed in water, in the point where the State
boundary line going through the Black Sea changes its
direction, at the intersection of the straight line going from the
border sign no. 1438 (buoy) on the azimuth of 102°30',0 with
the exterior margin of the Soviet marine boundary zone of 12
miles surrounding Serpents’ Island.” FP FPT
It went on to add:
“The boundary line, from the border sign no. 1438 (buoy) goes
through the Black Sea in a straight line, on the azimuth of 102°
30',0 until it reaches the exterior margin of the USSR marine
boundary zone of 12 miles aroun d Serpents' Island, to the
border sign no. 1439 (beacon) and from the border sign no.
1439 (beacon), the boundary passes on the exterior margin of
the USSR marine boundary zone of 12 miles, leaving Serpents’
51
Island on the USSR side.” TPFP(emphasis added).
Again, the phrase “the exterior margin of the USSR marine boundary zone of
12 miles” is the same as in the general and individual Procès Verbaux of 1949.
4.24. A sketch is included, which clearly shows the boundary line running south-
eastwards of Point 1439 as a curved line, i.e. as a sector of a circle with a
radius of 12 miles drawn from Serpents’ Island. The map attributes territory
within the 12 nm circle to the USSR (the indication on the map reads
C.C.C.P./U.R.S.S., in Russian and Romanian), and territory beyond it to
Romania (R.S.R/C.P.P, in Romanian and Russian). The sketch is shown as
Figure 7 (page 42 of this Memorial).
49
TPPT Procès Verbal of Description of the State Border Line between the Socialist Republic of
Romania and the Union of the Soviet Socialist Republics from Border Sign no. 1335 to Border Sign no.
1439, Drafted on the Basis of the Verifications Eff ected in 1972-1973, the Tulcea sector, signed in
50mail, on 4 September 1974 (Annex RM 21), p. 21.
TPPT Procès Verbal of Border Sign no. 1439 (beacon), signed in Ismail, on 4 September 1974
(Annex RM 22).
51
TPPT Ibid.
404.25. The difference between the 1974 individual Procès Verbal’s description of
border sign 1439 and the 1963 and 1974 general Procès Verbaux’s in use of
the phrase “territorial sea of the Soviet Union”, rather than the phrase “Soviet
Union marine boundary zone of 12 miles”, cannot have been intended to mean
that beyond the 12 nm arc there was an unexpressed and undetermined area of
Soviet maritime area, consisting of c ontinental shelf and exclusive economic
zones. This is particularly so as the established term “Soviet Union marine
boundary zone of 12 miles” (“ zonei sovietice de frontier ă marin ă de 12
mile”/”12-мильной морской пограничной полосы”) was used in the specific
Procès Verbaux of the individual si gns, of which the 1963 and 1974 general
Procès Verbaux were but summaries. Further, if the change of language in the
1963 Procès Verbal had been intended to record an eventual change of legal
regime, the 1974 individual Protocol of description would not have continued
to use the language of “marine boundary” ra ther than referring to “territorial
sea”.
4.26. The relevance of the provisions of th e various Procès Verbaux concluded
between Romania and the USSR after 1948 will be further detailed in Chapter
11 of this Memorial.
41 Figure 7
Sketch included in the Procès Verbal of Border
Point no. 1439, signed in Ismail, on 4 September
1974
42(b) Subsequent continental shelf and exclusive economic zone negotiations with the
Soviet Union
4.27. In 1967 Romania and the Soviet Uni on commenced negotiations concerning
the delimitation of the con tinental shelf and the exclusive economic zones of
the two States in the Black Sea. Ten rounds of negotiations were conducted
between 1967 and 1987 (3 rounds of consultations at expert level and 7 rounds
of negotiations at diplomatic level).
4.28. No concrete results could be reached, as the positions of the two countries
diverged on key elements of the delim itation process. Further considerations
on the approach promoted during these negotiations by Romania are presented
in Chapter 5 of this Memorial TPPT
(3) Negotiations with Ukraine following its independence
(a) The 1997 treaties
4.29. Following the independence of Ukraine, new negotiations were held between
Romania and Ukraine relating to a vari ety of questions, including issues
relating to the land border between the tw o States and the delimitation of the
continental shelf and exclusive economic zones between the two States.
4.30. One important product of these negotiati ons was the conclusion of the Treaty
on Relations and the Additional Agr eement in 1997. Despite the highly
questionable manner in which the USSR obtained Serpents’ Island, Romania
nevertheless accepted by these treaties that Serpents’ Island belongs to
Ukraine.
4.31. Article 1(2) of the Treaty on Relations provides:
“The Contracting Parties shall observe, in their mutual relations
as well as in the relations with other states, the principles of the
Charter of the United Nations and of the Helsinki Final Act:
sovereign equality, refraining from the threat or use of force,
52
TPPT See paras. 5.11-5.17 of this Memorial. inviolability of frontiers, territori al integrity of states, peaceful
settlement of disputes …” TPFPT
4.32. Article 2(1) provides:
“The Contracting Parties, in accordance with the principles and
norms of the international law and with the principles of the
Helsinki Final Act, reaffirm that the existing border between
them is inviolable and therefore, they shall refrain, now and in
the future, from any attempt against this border, as well as from
any demand for, or act of, seizur e and usurpation of part or all
the territory of the other Contracting Party.” TPFPT
4.33. It was expressly on this basis that negotiations relating to the 2003 Border
Regime Treaty and the delimitation of the boundaries between the States’
respective continental shelves and exclusive economic zones were foreseen in
Article 2(2) of the Treaty on Relations. This is evident from the Additional
Agreement, which provides in its paragraph 1 that:
“The Government of Ukraine and the Government of Romania
shall conclude, not later than two years from the date of the
entering into force of the Trea ty on the Relations of Good
Neighbourliness and Cooperation between Romania and
Ukraine, a Treaty on the regime of the state border between the
two states, on the basis of the pr inciple of succession of states
regarding borders, according to which the proclamation of the
independence of Ukraine does not affect the existing state-
border between Romania and Ukraine, as it was defined and
described in the Treaty of 1961 on the regime of the Romanian-
Soviet state border and in the appropriate demarcation
documents, valid on 16 July 1990 - the date of the adoption of
55
the Declaration on the state sovereignty of Ukraine.” TPFPT
4.34. Similarly, paragraph 3 expr essly recognises that Serp ents’ Island “belongs to
Ukraine, according to the above-mentioned paragraph 1”.
4.35. But at the same time, in the very same document, in paragraph 4, the Parties
agreed on the principles to be applied in delimiting the maritime boundary.
These principles, and their implications for the present case, will be analysed
TPPT Treaty on the Relations of Good Neighbourliness and Co-Operation between Romania and
Ukraine, signed at Constanţa, on 2 June 1997; 2159 United Nations Treaty Series 335 (Annex RM 1).
54
55PT Ibid.
TPPT Agreement Additional to the Treaty on the Relations of Good Neighbourliness and Co-
Operation between Romania and Ukraine, concluded by exchange of letters between the Ministers of
Foreign Affairs of Romania and Ukraine, done on 2 June 1997; 2159 United Nations Treaty Series 357
(Romanian letter), 363 (Ukrainian counterpart) (Annex RM 2).
44 in detail in later chapters. What must be emphasised here is that the resolution
between the Parties of outstanding territo rial issues coincided with Romanian
insistence on an equitable outcome to the resulting maritime delimitation, in
particular having regard to the provisions of Article 121 of the 1982
UNCLOS.
(b) The 2003 Border Regime Treaty
4.36. The 2003 Border Regime Treaty was concluded by the two States in
accordance with the 1997 Treaty on Relations. Article 1 of the 2003 Border
Regime Treaty expressly adopts the boundary contained in the 1961 Border
Regime Treaty:
“The State border between Romania and Ukraine passes on the
ground as defined and described in the Treaty between the
Government of the People’s Re public of Romania and the
Government of the Union of Soviet Socialists [ sic] Republics
on the Romanian-Soviet State Border Regime, Collaboration
and Mutual Assistance on Border Matters, signed at Bucharest,
th
on the 27 PPof February 1961, as well as in all the corresponding
demarcation documents, the maps of the State border between
the former People’s Republic of Romania and Union of the
Soviet Socialists [ sic] Republics, the protocols of the border
signs with their draft sketches , the corresponding annexes and
their additions, as well as the doc uments of verifications of the
State border line concluded between the former People’s
Republic of Romania/Socialist Republic of Romania and the
fother Union of the Soviet Socialist Republics in force on the
16P of July, 1990 – the date of th e adoption of the Declaration
on the State Sovereignty of Ukraine, as well as in the annexes
and additions to the above mentioned documents which may be
concluded between the Contracting Parties during the period of
validity of this Treaty,
with the exception of the sector of the State border line above-
defined, that passes from the Northern meeting point of the
State borders of Romania, Ukraine and the Republic of
Moldova to the Southern meeting point of the State borders of
those countries,
and continues, from the border sign 1439 (buoy) on the outer
limit of Ukraine’s territorial waters around the Serpents’ Island,
up to the point of 45 °05’21” north latitude and 30 °02’27” east
longitude, which is the meeting point with the Romanian State
border passing on the outer limit of its territorial sea. The
territorial seas of the Contracting Parties measured from the
baselines shall permanently have, at the meeting point of their
outer limits, the width of 12 maritime miles.
45 […]” TPF.T
4.37. At the moment of signing the 2003 Bo rder Regime Treaty, Romania made a
declaration (transmitted to the Ukrainian side by Note verbale no.
C26/3118/17 June 2003 TP), by which expressed its hope that the signature of
the Treaty was to give an impetus to the bilateral negotiations for the
delimitation of the continental shelf and the exclusive economic zones of
Romania and Ukraine in the Black Sea, in order to allow for the conclusion of
the bilateral agreement on the delimitation of these maritime areas in the
shortest delay, and reiterated its position according to which mentioning the
geographical coordinates of the last point of the Romanian-Ukrainian
boundary separating the territorial seas of the two States would not affect this
process of delimitation. This declara tion was confirmed by Romania at the
58
moment of the entry into force of the 2003 Border Regime Treaty. TPFFPT
4.38. The declaration was triggered by Ukrain e’s approach during the negotiations
on the issue of the delimitation of the continental shelf and the exclusive
economic zones of the two States in th e Black Sea, which had been unfolding
in parallel with the negotiations on the 2003 Border Regime Treaty. According
to this approach, the establishment of the final poin t of the boundary between
the territorial seas of the two countri es would have necessarily lead to a
solution for the delimitation of the outer maritime areas in accordance with the
Ukrainian position.
4.39. This point, fixed in the Border Regime Treaty as the “outer limit of Ukraine’s
territorial waters” “which is the meeting point with the Romanian State border
passing on the outer limit of its territorial sea” at 45 °05'21"N and 30°02'27"E,
59
will be referred to by Romania as “Point F” TPFPT
56
TPPT Treaty between Romania and Ukraine on th e Romanian-Ukrainian State Border Regime,
Collaboration and Mutual Assistance on Border Matters, signed at Cern ặuţi, on 17 June 2003 ( Annex
RM 3). The Treaty was registered with the Secretariat of the United Nations on 10 September 2004 by
Romania, and was assigned registration no. 40547
TPPT See Note verbale no. C26/3118 dated 17 June 2003 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
58mania to the Embassy of Ukraine in Bucharest (Annex RM 23)
TPPT See Note verbale no. E VI-1/3559 dated 27 May 2004 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
Romania to the Embassy of Ukraine in Bucharest (Annex RM 24)
59
TPPT It is worth mentioning that the Treaty provided for the conclusion of new documents on the
position of Point F, if needed in order to preserve the 12-mile breadth of the Romanian territorial sea.
464.40. Point F corresponds to a point on the 12 nm arc drawn around Serpents’ Island
under the September 1949 Procès Verbal , as adopted by the 1961 Border
Regime Treaty, and as described in the individual Procès Verbaux for Point
1439 from 1949 and 1974, and in the 1963 and 1974 Procès Verbaux on the
general description of the Romanian-S oviet border. It lays roughly south-
south-west of Serpents’ Island.
(c) Negotiations in relation to the continental shelf and the exclusive economic
zones
4.41. The Romanian–Ukrainian negotiations on the delimitation of the continental
shelf and exclusive economic zones opened in 1998, in accordance with the
provisions of the Additional Agreement. Before Romania seized this Court
with the present case, there were 24 r ounds of negotiations, as well as 10
rounds at expert level TP.PT
4.42. These negotiations ended into a stalem ate, as the two Parties diverged, inter
alia, on the definition of the relevant co asts, on the method to be applied and
on the interpretation and application of the relevant principles agreed in
paragraph 4 of the Additional Agreement.
4.43. The positions put forward by the two Parties during the negotiation process
were officially explained by both side s in diplomatic correspondence during
the negotiation process.
4.44. Romania favoured an approach based on the principles of the Additional
Agreement, in conformity with State pr actice and international jurisprudence,
mainly the case-law of this Court. Thus, Romania proposed that the
delimitation line be constructe d by provisionally drawing an
60
TPPT These rounds took place as following: 14-16 January 1998 (Kiev), 12-15 October 1998
(Bucharest), 18-22 January 1999 (Kiev), 16-19 March 1999 (Bucharest), 14-16 June 1999 (Kiev), 2-3
December 1999 (Bucharest), 17-19 January 2000 (Kiev), 29-31 March 2000 (Bucharest), 10-11 July
2001 (Kiev), 1-3 October 2001 (Bucharest), 23-24 January 2002 (Kiev), 28 February 2002 (Bucharest),
30-31 May and 11-12 November 2002 (Kiev), 2-3 December 2002 (Bucharest), 21-22 January 2003
(Kiev), 18-19 February 2003 (Bucharest), 9-10 April 2003 (Kiev), 15-16 May 2003 (Bucharest), 13
June 2003 (Kiev), 26-27 September 2003 (Constan ţa), 13 February 2004 (Odessa), 14 April 2004
(Brăila), 10 July 2004 (Yalta) and 8-9 September 2004 (Bucharest). The rounds at expert level were
organized on 11-12 February 2002 (Bucharest), 18-19 February 2002 (Kiev), 5-7 February 2003
(Bucharest), 6-9 May 2003 (Bucharest), 22-23 May 2003 (Kiev), 10-11 July 2003 (Constan ţa), 4-5
September 2003 (Odessa), 23-24 October 2003 (Suceava), 29-3 0 April 2004 (Ia şi) and 6-7 August
2004 (Kiev).
47 equidistant/median line between the rele vant adjacent/opposite coasts of the
two States, followed by an eventual adjust ment of this line as to take account
61
of the relevant/special circumstances of the delimitation area TP. The presence
of Serpents’ Island was identified as a most important such circumstance. The
equitableness of the line was to be te sted by the so-called “proportionality
test”, as done in international case-law.
4.45. By contrast, according to the Ukrainian proposed method, the delimitation line
would have been calculated as an averag e of two previously determined lines.
These were an equidistant/median line between the Romanian mainland coast
and the coasts of Serpents’ Island and then the Crimean Peninsula, and a line
62
determined in accordance with the so-called “method of proportionality” TPFPT
This method was undermined by a logica l contradiction. Thus, in its first
stage, while drawing the equidistant/median line, the Ukrainian side
considered as relevant the coast of Serpents’ Island and a fragment of the coast
of Crimea. By contrast, in its second stage (drawing the “proportionality” line)
Ukraine took into account the whol e coast of the Ukrainian mainland
(including all sectors north to Serpents ’ Island) – despite that, in accordance
with the approach in the first stag e, the Ukrainian mainland coast was
irrelevant for delimitation purposes.
4.46. In this context, it is worth mentioning that Ukraine, while notifying to the
United Nations Secretariat, in accor dance to Article 16 (2) of the 1982
UNCLOS, the geographical coordinates of the points defining the baselines
for measuring the breadth of its territo rial sea, exclusive economic zone and
continental shelf in the Black Sea has, did not include Serpents’ Island among
63
the relevant points. TPFThus, the Ukrainian approach to consider this maritime
feature as relevant for delimiting the continental shelf and the exclusive
economic zone of Ukraine is not opposable to Romania or to any other States.
TPPT See Note verbale no. C23/491 dated 24 January 2002 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
62mania to the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine (Annex RM 25).
TPPT See Note verbale no. 72/16-446-119 dated 29 May 2002 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
Ukraine to the Embassy of Romania in Kiev (Annex RM 26).
63
TPPT Ukraine. List of the geographical coordinates of the points defining the position of the
baselines for measuring the width of the territorial waters, economic zone and continental shelf of the
Black Sea, Law of the Sea Bulletin no.36/1998, pp. 49-50 ( Annex RM 27). Also available on
www.un.org/Depts/los/LEGISLATIONANDTREATIES/PDFFILES/UKR.htm UTH
484.47. Besides being self-contradictory, the Ukrainian method clearly failed to
comply with the principles set out in the Additional Agreement, binding on
both Parties. Thus, although the Additional Agreement called for an
application of the “principle of e quity and method of proportionality as
applied in State practice and in decisi ons of the international courts”, the
Ukrainian proposal supposed a totally unprecedented role for proportionality,
seen as an independent method of delimitation. Moreover, even if the
Additional Agreement provided for the ap plication of the “a rticle 121 of the
United Nations Conventions on the Law of the Sea … as applied in State
practice and in international case law” the Ukrainian side insisted that
Serpents’ Island should be treated on an equal footing with the opposing
Romanian mainland, despite the fact th at, in accordance with a consistent
body of State practice as well as several decisions of this Court and arbitral
tribunals, this maritime formation, due to its geographical position and natural
characteristics should be ignored for delimitation purposes.
4.48. Furthermore, the resulting Ukrainian claimed-line was not in conformity with
the Procès Verbaux concluded between Romania and the USSR starting in
1949, which clearly provided for the maritime boundary passing on the 12 nm
arc around Serpents’ Island.
4.49. Failure of the Ukrainian side to comply with the provisions of the agreements
in force between Romania and Ukraine led to failure of the bilateral
negotiations.
(4) Conclusions
4.50. The legal implications of these negotiations will be analysed in further detail
in later chapters. What needs to be stressed here are four basic facts:
• first, the maritime zone around Serp ents’ Island was es tablished in 1949,
in terms not limited to a territorial sea;
• second, that boundary was subsequently affirmed on repeated occasions,
without any suggestion that there were further areas appertaining to the
USSR beyond the 12 nm line;
49• third, Romania’s recognition that Serpen ts’ Island belonged to Ukraine in
1997 was bound up with the Additional Agreement and its list of
principles applicable in the delimita tion in order to achieve an equitable
solution;
• fourth, this clear and comprehensive lis t of principles, if applied correctly
during negotiations, with due account give n to international State practice
and jurisprudence, could have lead to a sustainable and equitable solution
for the delimitation issue.
50 CHAPTER 5
THE INFLUENCE OF HISTORY
5.1. It is worth underscoring the fact that neither the 1948 Protocol, nor the procès
verbal of delivery-reception signed on Serpents’ Island on 23 May 1948 was
authorised or ratified by the Romanian Parliament. The two documents by
which Serpents’ Island was incorporated within the territory of the USSR were
not the results of free negotiations between Romania and the Soviet Union and
were contrary to the provisions of the Peace Treaty of Paris of 1947.
5.2. It is also necessary to mention that the incorporation of Serpents’ Island in the
Soviet Union was not the only arbitr ary act taking place in 1948-1949 with
regard to the Romanian territory. T hus, the above mentioned September 1949
Procès Verbal established the river bord er line on the Kilia arm (the northern
arm of the Danube, representing the Ro manian-Soviet border) in such a way
as to allocate to the U SSR several Danubian islets situated on the Romanian
side of the navigable channel, in spite of the general principle established by
the same Procès Verbal that the border was to follow the middle of the main
navigable channel and that the islets were to be allocated accordingly.
5.3. Of particular importance for the course of the maritime boundary was the
2
allocation of the river islet of Limba (with an area of 10 km P), part of the
Romanian territory situated at the mouth of Kilia, to the USSR. As a result, the
river border ceased to follow the navigable channel of Kilia and was shifted to
the south, along a minor channel (the Musura). This affected the position of
the last point of the land/river border and, consequently, the course of the
maritime boundary delimiting the territorial seas of the two States (see Figure
8 – page 52 of this Memorial). Figure 8
The maritime areas in front of the Romanian and Soviet coasts
As it can be seen from the sketch, the inclusion of the islet of Limba in the Soviet
territory dramatically affected the position of the Romanian-Soviet river border, as
well as of the maritime boundary separating the territorial seas of the two States;
furthermore, the boundary separating the territorial seas of Romania and the USSR
is neither equidistant between the Romanian and Soviet adjacent coasts, nor median
between the Romanian and Soviet (Serpents’ Island) opposite coasts5.4. The maritime boundary establishe d by the same September 1949 Procès
Verbal and described in detail by the individual Procès Verbaux of
Border Signs no. 1437 (the last point of the river border), 1438 (buoy)
and 1439 (beacon) is, as well, ine quitable towards Romania: it
corresponds neither to th e line of equidistance between the Romanian
and then-Soviet adjacent coasts, nor to the median line between the
Romanian coast and Serpents’ Island and, moreover, Serpents’ Island is
given more weight than the Romanian mainland coast TPFPTThis is more
striking as there is no special circumstance in that area that could justify
such a solution. As a result of this establishment of the boundary,
2
Romania lost a maritime area of approximately 70 km P. The situation is
also presented in Figure 8 (page 52 of this Memorial).
5.5. The above mentioned situation can be explained only by the historical
circumstances of that period. After 23 August 1944, Romania was
occupied by Soviet troops, which, on 6 March 1945 imposed a
government under the leadership of dr . Petru Groza, made up mostly of
members of the Communist party, which did not represent the Romanian
65
people TPFPTAs Keith Hitchins wrote in his well-known volume Rumania
1866-1947,
“The Government headed by Petru Groza was a minority
government. Imposed by the Soviet Union, it did not
represent the will of the majority of Rumanians, who were
anti-Russian and anti-Communist” TPF.PT
5.6. The elections organised by the Groza government on 19 November 1946
were fraudulent and the result ing government was not a genuine
reflection of the will of the people. As Hitchins observed,
“Various independent sources suggest that the National
Peasants [the main anti-Communi st party] were on their way
to a landslide victory with about 70 per cent of the vote, an
expression of faith in the most democratic of all Rumanian
political parties and, no less, a manifestation of strong
64
TPPT The equidistance line would have followed a more northern tract; the Soviet marine
area of Serpents’ Island has a breadth of 12 mi les, while in that zone the Romanian area was
limited to about 9 miles, according to the factual situation of 1949 (8 miles in present).
65
66PT See Keith Hitchins, Rumania 1866-1947, Clarendon Press Oxford, 1994, pp. 514-515.
TPPT Ibid., p. 516. national feeling. It appears th at when Communist leaders
realized the extent of their impending defeat they had the
reporting of returns suspended […] and sent instructions to all
prefects to ‘revise’ the figures in order to show a victory for
the Bloc [the Communist-dominated alliance]. Ana Pauker
and other Communists appear to have consulted Moscow and
to have received the go-ahead to falsify the election results” TP.PT
5.7. Likewise, the proclamation of the “People’s Republic” on 30 December
1947 is also generally considered toda y as an act of a minority. In his
book Romania under Communist Rule, Dennis Deletant writes:
“In Romania the Communist Party took the initiatives
designed to reduce Romania to subservience to the Soviet
Union. It did so through the political system, the trade unions,
and the educational system.[…]The final action was the
forced abdication of King Mich ael, under the threat of civil
war, on 30 December 1947.The same day, the Romanian
People’s republic was declared. It did not stem from a popular
will, freely expressed, but from dictates of a political group
who were the puppets of a foreign master. Even the legality of
68
the law establishing the Republic was suspect […]” PFFP
5.8. Hence, the events connected to the Romanian-Soviet “understandings” of
1948 and 1949 did not take place between equal partners, but between an
occupied State and the occupying pow er. It is to mention that the
Romanian delegation had had a simila r behaviour with the occasion of
the negotiations of the 1947 Paris Peace Treaty:
“[…] the Rumanian delegation di d not contest any issues of
vital concern to the Soviet Un ion. For example, although the
pre-1940 frontier between Rumania and Hungary was
restored on the grounds that it had been altered under threat of
force, Tătărescu [the head of the Romanian delegation at the
peace negotiations in Paris] and company did not object to the
Soviet annexation of Bessara bia and northern Bukovina. Nor
did they bring up the Treaty of Craiova of 1940 with its loss
of southern Dobrudja to Bulgar ia, now a close Soviet ally.
Romanian diplomats who had ta ken refuge in the West […]
tried to represent the national interests of Greater Rumania
and repeatedly showed Western diplomats how the behaviour
of the official delegation was dictated by the Soviet Union
TPPT Hitchins, Rumania 1866-1947, Clarendon Press Oxford, 1994, p. 533. For the general
context of the organization of the elections, see p. 529-533.
TPPT Dennis Deletant, Romania under Communist Rule, The Center for Romanian Studies,
Iaşi-Oxford-Portland, 1999, p. 56-57
54 69
[…].” TPFPT
5.9. This factual status was maintained to a certain extent, even after the
withdrawal of the Soviet troops in July 1958. In this respect, Deletant notes
that
“On 25 July 1958, the last of the 35, 000 Soviet troops
left Romania. The most signi ficant impact of the Soviet
withdrawal upon Romanian leadership was psychological.
Romania was still tied firmly within the Soviet bloc.
Soviet air and naval base s remained on Romanian
territory, and Soviet divisions in southern Ukraine and
across the Prut in the Moldavian Republic could descend
at once in an emergency”. TPFPT
5.10. In conclusion, the process of the in corporation of Serpents’ Island in the
Soviet Union, as well as the 1949 establishment of the maritime
boundary between border signs 1437, 1438, 1439 and beyond did not
reflect the free will of the Romanian State.
5.11. The arbitrariness of this situat ion was underscored by Romania during
the 20 years of negotiations betw een Romania and the USSR on the
delimitation of the maritime spaces in the Black Sea. It was emphasised
that the unfair way in which Serpents ’ Island was transferred, as well as
the unfair allocation to it of a mar itime area with a breadth of 12 miles
(while the breadth of the Romanian territorial sea facing Serpents’ Island
was reduced) should not produce more negative effects than those which
Romania had been compelled to ac cept in 1948 and 1949. At the same
time, Romania always accepted that the provisions of the 1949 Procès
Verbal and its subsequent Romanian-Soviet understandings established –
albeit in an inequitable manner – the maritime boundary in the area
surrounding Serpents’ Island.
5.12. For instance, with the occasion of the Romanian-Soviet bilateral talks on
2-4 February 1976, the Ro manian negotiators re ferred to the Soviet-
advocated delimitation solution as
69
TPPT See Keith Hitchins, Rumania 1866-1947, Clarendon Press Oxford, 1994, p. 534.
TPPT See Dennis Deletant, Romania under Communist Rule, The Center for Romanian
Studies, Iaşi-Oxford-Portland, 1999, pp 96-97
55 “[being] based on a factual s ituation established in 1948,
the delimitation of the territo rial sea of 1948, which was
made in Romania’s disadvantage, based on unknown
criteria.” TPFPT
They went on to state that
“in 1949 Serpents’ Island left Ro mania’s territory against the
[provisions of] the peace trea ty […] which established the
border between the two States. We do not contest the 1947
[peace] treaty, but we cannot agree with the abnormal
situation created in this sector […] Nobody can use a
situation, nobody can prevail of it against another State. This
is the situation from 1948: we do not want this situation to
perpetrate its negativ72effects on the delimitation of the
continental shelf”. TPFPT
5.13. On 17 November 1978, the head of the Romanian delegation conveyed to
his Soviet counterpart the following:
“We have listened carefully to the declaration of the Soviet
delegation and I would like to make clear that the Romanian
delegation does not raise the issue of the maritime boundary
between [the territorial seas of] our countries. We have
underlined, though, the historical facts that cannot be ignored
by either party and that must be taken into account in the
delimitation.
In its statement of 15 November, the Romanian delegation
stated, among others, the following:
‘Serpents’ Island cannot produce any unfavourable effects for
Romania not only because it is a special circumstance in
itself, but also because of the way it was detached from the
territory of Romania in 1948 contrary to the provisions of the
Peace Treaty of Paris of 1947, a situation that can by no
means be ignored by the Soviet party’.
This statement is based on the following elements:
1. The Peace Treaty of 15 September 1947 provides in
art.1: ‘The frontiers of Roma nia, shown on the map annexed
to the present Treaty (Annex I) shall be those which existed
on January 1 1941’. Thus, the provision in the Treaty
confirms an undisputable legal situation, id est that Serpents’
Island was an integral part of the territory of Romania. The
map attached to the Peace Treaty also reflects this situation.
2. The protocol of 4 Februa ry 1948, titled “Protocol to
Specify the Line of the Stat e Boundary between the People’s
Republic of Romania and the Union of Soviet Socialist
Republics” concerned only the materialization of the trace of
71
72PT Extract from the minutes of the 1976 Romanian-Soviet negotiations (Annex RM 28).
TPPT Ibid.
56 the border line established by the Peace Treaty. In the
Protocol it is stipulated in the first paragraph that this
materialization of the state bor der is done in accordance with
art.1 of the 1947 Peace Treaty. Th e obligation of the Parties
was, accordingly, to fix the trace of the border between the
two States as it was at 1 Ja nuary 1941. Nevertheless, despite
the provisions of the Peace Tr eaty, in this Protocol, the
purpose of which was only to define the trace of the state
border of Romania existing at 1 January 1941, it is provided
that Serpents’ Island is incorporated into the USSR. So, by a
Protocol having the said purpos e, this island was detached
from the territory of Romania, contrary to the provisions of
the Peace Treaty.
This is the meaning of th e contradiction to which we
referred in our intervention of 15 November.
We want to remind, also, that even in 1948, when this
island was detached from the Romanian territory, there
existed a treaty of friendship that stipulated clearly the
inviolability of borders, similarly to the 1970 Treaty.
Nonetheless, the border was modified by detaching the island
from the Romanian territory.
In conclusion, we have made this statement, as during other
rounds of our negotiations, going from the necessity that
political and legal circumstances linked to Serpents’ Island,
constituting in itself special circumstances, shall be taken into
consideration in order to achie ve a truly equitable agreement
in respect to the delimitation of the continental shelf in the
Black Sea between our countries.” TPFPT
5.14. Further, on 15 May 1980, the head of the Romanian delegation said that:
“In relation to Serpents’ Isla nd, the Romanian delegation has
expressed its position, and not only once. Once more, we
underline that we cannot agree with your opinion, that the
delimitation of the continental shelf should start from the
point of confluence of the territorial seas of Romania with the
ones established for Serpents’ Island […] By no means can
the territorial waters establishe d by the Soviet party for this
minuscule island constitute a starting point for the
delimitation. […].
We see that Serpents’ Island is considered by the Soviet
delegation the decisive fact or in the delimitation of
continental shelf between our countries. We want to underline
that the island cannot produce any effects, unfavourable for
Romania, not only because it is a special circumstance in
itself, but also because of the way it was detached from the
territory of Romania in 1948 contrary to the provisions of the
Peace Treaty of Paris of 1947, a situation that can by no
means be ignored by the Soviet party.” TPFPT
5.15. Again, with the occasion of the last round of the Romanian-Soviet
TPPT Extract from the minutes of the 1978 Romanian-Soviet negotiations (Annex RM 29).
57 negotiations (1-2 October 1987), the Ro manian head of delegation said
that
“By establishing, in 1948, an ar ea of water boundary of 12
miles around this island [Serpents’ Island], the maritime area
which Romania could have s outh to Serpents’ Island was
diminished [...]. In these conditions this island was not ignored,
as it was already allocated its own maritime area, which
represents an important effect […], an effect which must not be
75
exaggerated, given its characteristics.” TPFPT
DescR ribhingnian-proposed delimitation line, the Romanian
negotiator added that
“As already shown, we think th at, according to its features,
Serpents’ Island cannot have its [continental] shelf and
[exclusive economic] zone. But we do not ignore it. […] The
delimitation proposal respects th e bilateral Romanian-Soviet
understandings regarding Serpents ’ Island. It will continue to
have maritime boundary waters of 12 mil76, together with their
accompanying soil and subsoil.” TPFPT
In conclusion, the Romanian delegation pointed out that
“Regarding Serpents’ Island, without mentioning the
conditions in which, by the 1948 Procès Verbal, the question of
this island was dealt with and no twithstanding the fact that it
has very reduced dimensions, we do not ignore it as far as the
maritime spaces are concerned. We did not ignore it when the
27 September 1949 Procès Ve rbal was concluded and
established that ‘from the border sign 1439 (beacon), the
boundary passes on the exterior margin of the Soviet marine
boundary zone of 12 miles, leav ing Serpents’ Island on the
USSR side’. As at the date of the conclusion of this Procès
Verbal the breadth of the Romani an territorial seas was of 6
miles, the agreed delimitation line on that sector separated both
territorial waters of the two States and areas that, in the absence
of any agreement, would have be longed to the high seas. That
is why we are right to consid er that, in 1949, our governments
established a sui generis delimitation line, which confirmed the
pass-over of Serpents’ Island to the USSR and allocated to it,
in part explicitly and in part implicitly, a semicircular maritime
space, with a radius of 12 mile s, whose exterior limit on the
segment separating Romanian waters from Soviet waters
received the characteristics of a State boundary. What was
TPPT Extract from the minutes of the 1980 Romanian-Soviet negotiations (Annex RM 30).
TPPT Extract from the minutes of the 1987 Romanian-Soviet negotiations (Annex RM 31).
TPPT Extract from the minutes of the 1987 Romanian-Soviet negotiations (Annex RM 31).
58 agreed then is the maximum effect that can be given to this
island. We cannot go any further beyond.” TPFPT
5.16. As clearly seen, Romania did not the n, in bilateral talks with the USSR
or subsequently in its discussions with Ukraine, seek to reverse the
coerced transfer of 1948 or the unju st provisions of the 1949 Procès
Verbal. Romania put more value on the need for order and stability of the
international community than on its ow n historical frustrations. Thus, by
the provisions of the already me ntioned bilateral Romanian-Soviet
documents concluded in 1961, 1963, 1974, as well as of the Romanian-
Ukrainian agreements concluded in 1997, it recognised Serpents’ Island
and its 12 mile zone as belonging to the USSR and later Ukraine, as a
State successor of the former Soviet Union.
5.17. Romania, did, however, always insist that the flawed transaction of 1948
should not be prolonged and extende d in space, beyond the actual
language of the 1949 delimitation ag reements, to the manifest
disadvantage of Romania.
5.18. This was also the basis for Romania’s insistence in 1997 — when for the
first time it formally accepted that Serpents’ Island belonged to Ukraine
— that principles of maritime de limitation be adopted which would not
cause it such further prejudice, in pa rticular by treating Serpents’ Island
as a rock for the purposes of Article 121 of the 1982 UNCLOS. The
history of the matter explains the vital link between Romania’s
acceptance of the territorial status quo and the principles of delimitation
specified in the Additional Agreement of 1997.
5.19. Likewise before this Court Romania does not ask for the reversal of prior
transactions, whatever their merits or auspices. But it does say that the
arbitrary acts perpetrated in the 1948 and 1949 – the illegal take-over of
Serpents’ Island by the Soviet Union, as well as the unjust allocation of
maritime areas to it larger than th e maritime areas of Romania and not
justified by the very characteristics of this maritime feature - can in no
way constitute a basis for further injustice. Hence, the territorial rights of
TPPT Extract from the minutes of the 1987 Romanian-Soviet negotiations (Annex RM 31).
59Romania cannot be affected more than they have already been, while an
equitable solution should take into account any historical or political
prejudice previously inflicted.
60 CHAPTER 6
EXISTING DELIMITATIONS IN THE BLACK SEA
(1) Introduction
6.1 The general context of the maritime delimitations already established in the
Black Sea should be seen together w ith its geographical character as an
enclosed sea. As further explained in this Chapter, the Romanian-Ukrainian
maritime delimitation cannot ignore the delimitation practice existing in the
Black Sea, as well as the solutions identified by this practice.
6.2 In addition to Romania and Ukraine, both Turkey and Bulgaria have continental
shelf and exclusive economic zone entitl ements in the western basin of the
Black Sea. Considering th e geographical configurati on of the area, there are
five delimitation situations between the riparian States in this western basin.
6.3 A number of these delimitations have already been settled by agreement. There
are single maritime boundaries for both the continental shelf and the exclusive
economic zones between Turkey and Ukraine and between Turkey and
Bulgaria.
6.4 The boundaries between Romania and Bulg aria and Romania and Turkey have
yet to be agreed.
6.5 A presentation of the existing delimitations in the western basin of the Black
Sea is shown in Figure 9 (page 62 of this Memorial). Figure 9
Maritime delimitations in the western basin of
the Black Sea (2) Delimitation Agreements with and between third States
(a) Turkey/USSR (Ukraine, Georgia, Russian Federation)
6.6 Turkey and the USSR concluded the Agreement concerning the delimitation of
the continental shelf between the Republic of Turkey and the Union of Soviet
Socialist Republics in the Black Sea H(hereafter the “Turke y/USSR Continental
Shelf Agreement”) at Moscow on 23 June 1978. TPFFUkraine and Georgia are
successors to this Agreement, and to the boundary it creates, by way of
succession following the break-up of the former USSR. The Russian
Federation, continuing the personality of the former USSR, is likewise bound
by the Agreement as concerns its remaining territory.
6.7 Article 1 of the Turkey/USSR Contin ental Shelf Agreement delimits the
continental shelf between the former U SSR and Turkey running from the outer
limit of the territorial sea between what is now Georgia and Turkey, TPFPT
diagonally north-west across the central section of th e Black Sea south of the
Crimean peninsula up to a point situated to the south-west of Sevastopol in the
Crimea (43°20'43"N, 32°00'00"E).
6.8 Article 1, having set out the coordinates of the turning points of the agreed line,
continues:
“The Contracting Parties agree that with the conclusion of this
Agreement the line delimiting the continental shelf between the
Republic of Turkey and the Uni on of Soviet Socialist Republics
has been defined as far as the point with co-ordinates 43 °20'43"
north latitude and 32°00'00" eas t longitude The Parties have
agreed that the question of extending the line delimiting the
continental shelf further to the West between the points with co-
ordinates 43°20'43"N north latitude and 32°00'00" east longitude
TPPT Agreement between the Government of the Republic of Turkey and the Government of the
Union of Soviet Socialist Republics concerning the delimitation of the continental shelf between the
Republic of Turkey and the Union of Soviet Socialist Republics in the Black Sea , Moscow, 23 June
1978; 1247 United Nations Treaty Series 141 (in force 15 May 1981).
TPPT For delimitation of the territorial sea, see the Protocol between the Government of the Republic
of Turkey and the government of the Union of Soviet Socialist Republics concerning the establishment
of the maritime boundary between Turkish and Soviet territorial waters in the Black Sea, Ankara, 17
April 1973; 990 United Nations Treaty Series 201 (in force 27 March 1975). and the co-ordinates 43°26'59" north latitude and 31°20'48" east
longitude, shall be settled later, in the course of subsequent
negotiations, to be held at a convenient time.”
6.9 The Agreement therefore envisaged that, in principle, the end-point of the
delimitation between the USSR and Turk ey would be at or about the point
43°26'59"N and 31°20'48"E. Romania will refe r to this point as "Point L". The
situation can be seen on Figure 9 (page 62 of this Memorial).
6.10 This point corresponds almost exactly to the equidistance tri-point between the
Soviet Union (to which Ukraine is th e successor), Turkey and Romania.
Accordingly, it is clear that the Soviet Union (a nd Turkey) envisaged in 1978
that Romania can validly assert a claim to maritime zones out to at least this
point, and that, in the absence of a de limitation between the Soviet Union and
Romania, agreement of the boundary a ny further west would be likely to
impinge on areas claimed by Romania.
6.11 The delimitation boundary established in the Agreement is based on simplified
80
equidistance TP. It is worth mentioning that, unlike the boundary delimiting the
continental shelf between the two c ountries, the boundary separating their
territorial sea had been pr eviously established as a non-equidistant line, on the
81
prolongation of the last course of the land boundary TP.PT
6.12 Following the proclamation of an excl usive economic zone by Turkey on 17
December 1986, Turkey and the USSR agreed by an exchange of notes dated 23
December 1986 and 6 February 1987 (hereafter “Turkey/USSR EEZ
Agreement”), that the continental sh elf boundary agreed in the Turkey/USSR
Continental Shelf Agreement would also constitute the boundary between their
exclusive economic zones.
TPPT See International Maritime Boundaries, vol II, edited by Jonathan I. Charney and Lewis M.
Alexander, Martinus Nijhoff Publishers, 1996, p. 1695.
TPPT Ibid., p. 1683.
64 (b) TTurkey/Bulgaria T
6.13 On 4 December 1997, Turkey and Bulg aria concluded an Agreement on
determination of the boundary in the mouth area of the Rezovska/Mutludere
river and delimitation of the maritime areas between the two States in the Black
82
Sea. TPFPThe Turkey/Bulgaria Delimitation Treaty delimited the territorial sea
(Article 3), and continental shelf and ex clusive economic zones (Article 4) of
the two States in the south-western por tion of the western basin of the Black
Sea.
6.14 The maritime boundary thereby drawn between Turkey and Bulgaria runs, with
minor variations, roughly east-north-east from the outer limit of the boundary
between the territorial seas of the two States “through geodetic lines joining the
turning points” defined in Article 4(1) . The two final points described by the
Agreement are Point 9, located at 43 °19'54"N, 31 °06'33"E, and Point 10,
located at 43 °26'49"N, 31°20'43"E. However, Article 4, paragraph 1 of the
Agreement continues:
“As for the drawing of the delimitation line of the continental
shelf and the Exclusive Economic Zone further to the North-East
direction between geographic point 43°19'54" N and 31°06'33" E
and geographic point 43°26'49" N and 31 °20'43" E, the Parties
have agreed that such a drawing will be finalized later at
subsequent negotiations which will be held at a suitable time.”
Turkey and Bulgaria accordingly reserv ed the possibility of further variation
between Point 9 and Point 10.
6.15 Point 9 corresponds to the equidistance tr i-point between Bulgaria, Turkey and
Romania. Accordingly, it is clear that, si milarly to the previous approach of the
Soviet Union and Turkey, Bulgaria a nd Turkey envisaged that Romania can
validly assert a claim beyond Point 9.
TPPT Agreement between the Republic of Turkey and the Republic of Bulgaria on determination of
the boundary in the mouth area of the Rezovska/Mutludere river and delimitation of the maritime areas
between the two States in the Black Sea , Sofia, 4 December 1997 (in force 4 November 1998); 2087
United Nations Treaty Series . The agreement was registered with the United Nations Secretariat on 1
November 1999 by Bulgaria, and was assigned registration no. 36204.
656.16 Point 10 of the Turkey/Bulgaria Delimitation Treaty, located at 43 °26'49"N,
31°20'43"E, and the final point defined in the Turkey/USSR Continental Shelf
Agreement (Point L) located at 43 °26'59"N and 31°20'48"E (which also serves
as the final point defined in relation to the exclusive economic zone boundary
under the Turkey/USSR EEZ Agreement) ar e virtually identical, varying only
by 10 seconds latitude north and 5 seconds longitude east. This difference may
be accounted for by the different projections used in calculating these points.
6.17 As already presented above, this point is the equidistance tri-point between
Ukraine, Turkey and Romania, while Point 9 from the Bulgaria/Turkey
agreements coincides with the equidistance tri-point between Bulgaria,
Romania and Ukraine.
6.18 The graphic representation of the Bulgarian-Turkish delimitation can be seen on
Figure 9 (page 62 of this Memorial).
6.19 As already explained, the 1997 Agreemen t established the maritime boundary
delimiting the Bulgarian and Turkish territorial seas, exclusive economic zones
and continental shelf. Due to historical circumstances, the boundary separating
the territorial seas of the two States was established on the geographical parallel
passing through the terminal land border poi nt; thus, it does not comply with
equidistance, even though, taking into account the characteristics of the
delimitation area (the coastlines of the two States are relati vely even and there
are no islands or islets and no major protrusions on either coastline), an
equidistance line could be presumed to produce equitable results. However, the
situation is different regarding the continental shelf and the exclusive economic
zones: the boundary separating these maritime areas is based on a simplified
83
equidistant line, considered by the parties as just and equitable TP.PT
TPPT See International Maritime Boundaries, vol IV, edited by Jonathan I. Charney and Robert W.
Smith, Martinus Nijhoff Publishers, 2002, p. 2874.
666.20 As, by agreeing to a maritime boundary separating the territorial seas non-
complying with the equidistance principl e, Turkey seems to have suffered a
territorial loss, it appears that this was compensated by the establishment of the
first segment of the boundary delimiting the continental shelf and the exclusive
economic zones - in the area lying between the co-ordinates of 42 °14'28''N,
29°20'45''E; 42°26'24''N, 29°34'20''E and 42 °29'24''N, 29°49'36''E, where the
delimitation boundary deviates to the nor th of the equidistant line, thus
allocating to Turkey maritime areas to compensate for the “loss” connected to
the delimitation of the territorial seas TPF. This situation is depicted in Figure 10
(page 68 of this Memorial).
84
TPPT See International Maritime Boundaries, vol IV, edited by Jonathan I. Charney and Robert W.
Smith, Martinus Nijhoff Publishers, 2002, p. 2875.
67 Figure 10
The Bulgarian-Turkish maritime boundary
The area of territorial sea lost by Turkey was compensated by an area of EEZ
and continental shelf situated north to the equidistance line (3) Relevance of other delimitations to the Court’s task
6.21 In accordance with Article 59 of the Statut e of the Court, the judgments of the
Court are only binding on the parties, and only in respect of that particular case.
There can be no question of prejudging th e eventual delimitation of boundaries
of either Ukraine or Romania with the other riparian States , or of the other
States inter se. As the Court noted in the Qatar/Bahrain case and again in
Cameroon/Nigeria, all it can do in such situat ions is to effect a bilateral
delimitation between the two Parties befo re it, running in a certain direction
85
towards but stopping short of the tri-point. TPFFPT
6.22 But the Court is entitled to be informed of the maritime boundary agreements or
claims of third parties; the solutions established by the existing delimitation
agreements, together with the geographical characteristics of the area in which
these delimitations were concluded deserve being analysed in detail.
2
6.23 The Black Sea is a co ntinental sea, having an area of 462,535 km PP(including
the small Azov Sea, situated in its norther n part). Its only link with other seas -
the Mediterranean Sea and, through it, th e planetary ocean – is represented by
the straits of Bosphorus a nd Çanakkale and the Sea of Marmara, situated in its
South-Western part. Thus, the Black Sea is , in the terms of Article 122 of the
1982 UNCLOS, an “enclosed sea”.
6.24 As clearly presented, all the delimitation agreements concluded in the Black Sea
used equidistance as the method for the delimitation of the continental shelf and
the exclusive economic zones. Thus, the Bulgarian-Turkish delimitation line is
equidistant to the Bulgarian and Turkish adjacent coasts, while the
Soviet/Ukrainian-Turkish delimitation line is median between the respective
relevant coasts. No major consideration was given to other factors related to the
TPPT Maritime Delimitation and Territorial Questi ons Between Qatar and Bahrain (Qatar v.
Bahrain), Judgment, ICJ Reports 2001 , p. 116 (para. 250); Land and Maritime Boundary between
Cameroon and Nigeria (Cameroon v. Nigeria; Equatorial Guinea intervening) , ICJ Reports 2002,
judgment of 10 October 2002, para. 307. The same approach was taken by the Arbitration Tribunal in relevant coasts of the parties (such as their geographical configuration or
eventual disproportion between them) wh en the delimitation lines were drawn.
Moreover, equidistance was chosen as the solution for the maritime boundary
delimiting the exclusive economic zones and the continental shelf of the
respective countries irresp ective of the fact that the boundary delimiting their
territorial seas was not the equidistance line.
6.25 Due to the nature of the Black Sea as an enclosed sea and to its limited area –
and the even more limited area of its western part, where the Romanian-
Ukrainian delimitation occurs – there is a clear need for consistency among all
cases of delimitation in the Black Sea. Thus, using equidistance in all concluded
agreements (which was considered equita ble by all parties in volved) leads to a
situation in which using different met hods in the other de limitation processes
would tend to bring about inequitable results.
6.26 The analysis of international case-law l eads to the conclusion that, in cases of
enclosed seas, the actual or prospective delimitation agreements in the relevant
area constitute a relevant circumstance for delimitation purposes.
6.27 Thus, in the North Sea Continental Shelf cases, the Court found that one of the
relevant circumstances in the area of delimitation is
“the element of reasonable de gree of proportionality, which
delimitation carried out in accordance with equitable principles
ought to bring about between the ex tent of the continental shelf
areas appertaining to the coasta l States and the length of the
relevant part of its coast”, underlining that in the evaluation of
this circumstance due account is to be taken of the “effects,
actual and prospective, of any other continental shelf delimitation
between States in the same region”. TPFPT
6.28 A similar statement was made by the Court in the Tunisia/Libya case. TPFPT
Eritrea-Yemen (Second Stage: Maritime Delimitation), Award of 17 December 1999, International Legal
Materials, vol. 40, p. 1006 (para. 136).
TPPT North Sea Continental Shelf Cases, Judgment, ICJ Reports 1969, p. 4 54 (para. 101 D (3)).
TPPT Continental Shelf (Tunisia/Libyan Arab Jamahiriya), Judgment, ICJ Reports 1982 , p. 93 (para.
133 B (5)).
706.29 In the Case of the delimitation of the maritime boundary between Guinea and
Guinea-Bissau, the Arbitral Tribunal stated that
“[a] delimitation designed to obt ain an equitable result cannot
ignore the other delimitations already made or still to be made in
the region” TF8PT
6.30 The factual geographical situation of the Black Sea, as well as the homogenous
practice regarding delimitations of maritime areas, makes a similar treatment
essential.
6.31 For instance, in the wester n part of the Black Sea, the Bulgarian-Turkish and
Ukrainian-Turkish delimitations of the continental shelf and the exclusive
economic zones were realised on the basi s of equidistance between the relevant
adjacent/opposite coasts. The equidistant/median line was generally not
corrected to reflect other factors (such as an eventual disproportion between the
89
lengths of the relevant coasts) TPF– a solution which seems to have disadvantaged
Turkey, which has a coast longer than both the Ukrainian and Bulgarian
relevant coasts.
6.32 Using different approaches in the Roma nian-Ukrainian process of delimitation
would lead to an inequitable result in favour of one party, which could benefit
from a correction of the delimitation line in its advantage and, on the other
hand, would benefit from no correction havi ng been done in its disadvantage in
relation with a third State. To avoid such a situation, the equ itable approach is
to apply the method of equidistance in the case of delimitation between
Romania and Ukraine too – as it is also set forth in paragraph 4 b) of the
Additional Agreement.
6.33 Moreover, one cannot but notice the similarity between the situation in the cases
of delimitation of Romania and Ukraine, on the one hand, and the delimitation
88
89PT ILR vol. 77, p. 677 (para.93); also RIIA, vol. XIX, part IV (1985), p. 183 (para. 93)
TPPT In the case of the Turkey/Bulgaria Delimi tation Treaty the boundar y between the EEZ and
continental shelf of the two States was corrected so as to compensate for the position of the boundary in
the territorial sea - see para.6.20 of this Memorial.
71 effected between Bulgaria and Turkey, on the other hand. The ratio of
proportionality between the relevant coast of Romania and Ukraine and
respectively Bulgaria and Turkey is roughly the same, and the geographical
relationship between these relevant coasts is also similar. The situation in the
southern part of the western basin of the Black Sea resembles the situation in its
northern part, except for the presence of Serpents’ Island. For considerations of
logic and equity, the same method – i.e., equidistance – should be applied in the
case of delimitation between Romania a nd Ukraine, subject always to the
special situation of Serpents’ Isla nd, already substantially covered by
90
agreement, as has been shown TPPT
6.34 Considering the elements mentioned above , the general situation of the Black
Sea – from the point of view of its geographical characteristics which give it the
characteristic of an enclosed sea – s een in conjunction with the delimitation
solutions consecrated in the delimitation agreements already concluded leads to
a situation in which an eventual drama tic change of the method used for the
delimitation of the economic areas of Romania and Ukraine, as against the
method used in all other delimitations comp leted in the Black S ea, will lead to
inequitable results. Thus, it seems certain that, in view of the already established
practice of delimitation in the Black S ea, which is a geographically limited,
enclosed sea, the only method of delimita tion prone to bring about equitable
results is equidistance – the same method used in the other agreements already
in force – certainly, qualified by any pre-existing agreements or relevant
circumstances.
90
TPPT The situation of the maritime boundaries separating the territorial seas of Romania and Ukraine,
on the one hand, and Bulgaria and Turkey, on the other hand, is also similar: in both cases these
boundaries were established by agreement and depart from equidistance.
72 PARTII
THE APPLICABLELAW ASA GREEDBY THE
PARTIES
73 CHAPTER 7
APPLICABLE BILATERAL TREATIES
(1) Paramountcy of agreement in maritime delimitation
7.1 Romania and Ukraine are now parties to the 1982 UNCLOS. Romania deposited
its instrument of ratification on 17 December 1996 and Ukraine did so on 26 July
1999. The Convention entered into force as between them on 25 August 1999, in
91
accordance with Article 308(2) of the 1982 UNCLOS. TPFPT
7.2 Articles 74 and 83 of the 1982 UNCLOS deal with delimitation of the exclusive
economic zone and continental shelf, respectively. Article 74 provides:
“Delimitation of the exclusive economic zone
between States with opposite or adjacent coasts
1. The delimitation of the exclusive economic zone between
States with opposite or adjacent coasts shall be effected by
agreement on the basis of international law, as referred to in
Article 38 of the Statute of the International Court of Justice, in
order to achieve an equitable solution.
2. If no agreement can be re ached within a reasonable
period of time, the States concerned shall resort to the procedures
provided for in Part XV.
3. Pending agreement as provided for in paragraph 1, the
States concerned, in a spirit of understanding and cooperation,
shall make every effort to enter into provisional arrangements of
a practical nature a nd, during this transi tional period, not to
jeopardize or hamper the reaching of the final agreement. Such
arrangements shall be without prejudice to the final delimitation.
4. Where there is an agreement in force between the States
concerned, questions relating to the delimitation of the exclusive
economic zone shall be determ ined in accordance with the
provisions of that agreement.”
91
TPPT Both States were previously parties to the Convention on the Continental Shelf, Geneva, 29
April 1958 (in force 10 June 1964), 499 United Nations Treaty Series 312. Ukraine ratified the
Convention on 12 January 1961; Romania acceded to it on 12 December 1961. Similarly, Article 83 provides:
“Delimitation of the continental shelf between
States with opposite or adjacent coasts
1. The delimitation of the continental shelf between States
with opposite or adjacent coasts shall be effected by agreement
on the basis of international law, as referred to in Article 38 of
the Statute of the International Court of Justice, in order to
achieve an equitable solution.
2. If no agreement can be re ached within a reasonable
period of time, the States concerned shall resort to the procedures
provided for in Part XV.
3. Pending agreement as provided for in paragraph 1, the
States concerned, in a spirit of understanding and cooperation,
shall make every effort to enter into provisional arrangements of
a practical nature a nd, during this transi tional period, not to
jeopardize or hamper the reaching of the final agreement. Such
arrangements shall be without prejudice to the final delimitation.
4. Where there is an agreement in force between the States
concerned, questions relating to the delimitation of the
continental shelf shall be dete rmined in accordance with the
provisions of that agreement.”
7.3. As recognised in Articles 74 and 83, in maritime delimitation the fundamental
norm is that the parties shall effect the delimitation “by agreement on the basis of
international law… in order to achieve an equitable solution”. This is equally the
position under general (customary) interna tional law, as recognized by the Court
in the North Sea Continental Shelf cases and on many subsequent occasions. In
the North Sea Continental Shelf cases, PFFthe Court observed that, starting with the
Truman Proclamation “the two concepts, of delimitation by mutual agreement
and delimitation in accordan ce with equitable principl es, have underlain all the
93
subsequent history of the subject” PF FPLater the Court observed that there existed
certain basic legal notions reflecting
92
TPPT North Sea Continental Shelf (Federal Republic of Germany/Denmark; Federal Republic of
Germany/Netherlands),Judgment, ICJ Reports 1969, p. 4.
TPPT Ibid., pp. 35-36 (para. 55).
75 “the opinio juris in the matter of delimitation; those principles
being that delimitation must be the object of agreement between
the States concerned, and that such agreement must94e arrived at
in accordance with equitable principles.” TPFPT
As a consequence, the Cour t ruled that, as a matter of customary international
law:
“delimitation is to be effected by agreement in accordance with
equitable principles, and taki ng account of all the relevant
95
circumstances…”. TPFPT
7.4. For the purposes of Articles 76(4) and 83(4), evidently it does not matter
whether the agreement in question was concluded before or after the entry into
force of the 1982 UNCLOS for the States concerned. Whenever it may have
been concluded, an agreement in for ce relating to the delimitation of the
exclusive economic zones and/or contin ental shelf remains binding, and the
delimitation “shall be determined in ac cordance with the pr ovisions of that
agreement.” Moreover this language cl early applies to partial as well as
complete delimitations. For example a treaty which partly delimits maritime
zones is binding even though the parties ma y have still to comp lete the task of
delimiting their outer maritime areas.
7.5. Articles 74(4) and 83(4) of the 1982 UNCLOS are formulated in broad terms.
They cover not only agreements on the precise location of a delimitation, but
agreements on “questions re lating to the delimitation of the exclusive economic
zones or the continental shelf”. Thus, for example, an agreement between the
parties that a particular feature should not be considered as a base-point for the
purposes of delimitation would be an agre ement “relating to the delimitation of
the continental shelf”.
7.6. Thus, the various Procès Verbaux c oncluded between Romania and USSR in
1949, 1963 and 1974, establishing the directi on of the maritime boundary on the
94
TPPT North Sea Continental Shelf (Federal Republic of Germany/Denmark; Federal Republic of
Germany/Netherlands),Judgment, ICJ Reports 1969, pp. 46-47 (para. 85)
TPPT Ibid., p. 53 (para. 101(C)(1))
76 12 mile arc around Serpents ’ Island clearly constitute “agreements in force
relating to the delimitation”. To the extent that it determines the principles to be
applied in effecting the delimitation of this particular area, paragraph 4(a) to (e)
of the Additional Agreement constitutes as well “an agreement in force …
relating to the delimitation” of the exclusive economic zone and continental shelf
within the meaning of UNCLOS Articles 74(4) and 83(4), and is to be applied by
the Court as such.
7.7. Furthermore, having regard to the principle of primacy of agreement in maritime
delimitation (1982 UNCLOS Articles 74(1) and 83(1)), an agreement between
two Parties that certain principles are to be applicable in the negotiations for a
delimitation between them must be considered as equivalent to an agreement that
those same principles should be applied by the Court. By agreeing to resort to
judicial delimitation the parties ask the Court to determine on their behalf the
equitable solution having regard to the relevant circumstances, in case the parties
are unable to agree on such a solution themselves. In effect the Court is doing for
the parties what they have been unable to achieve for themselves. TPFThere would
be no point in agreement on the relevant factors in a delimitation if—the parties
having failed to agree on how they are to be applied—the Court were free to
ignore those factors in delimiting the boundary.
7.8. On that view, a State which had agreed, fo r example, that a particular feature was
to be considered a “rock” for the pur poses of Article 121(3), could simply
frustrate the negotiations by one means or another, in the expectation that its
agreement would be considered irrelevant by a Court. This cannot be correct or
consistent with the principle of good faith, which is underlined by Article 300 of
the 1982 UNCLOS. If a factor is agreed by the parties to be relevant or binding
for the delimitation, it must be equally relevant or binding for the Court in
carrying out the delimitation on th eir behalf. In short, fo r two States to say that,
TPPT Cf. the observation of the Court in North Sea Continental Shelf Cases (Federal Republic of
Germany/Denmark; Federal Republic of Germany/Netherlands), Judgment, ICJ Reports 1969 , p. 47
(para. 87) “the judicial settlement of international disputes ‘is simply an alternative to the direct and
friendly settlement of such disputes between the par ties’”, citing the Order of the Permanent Court in
Free Zones of Upper Savoy and the District of Gex (First Phase), P.C.I.J., 1929, Series A, No. 22, p. 13.
77 in their negotiations, aimed at reachi ng an agreement on a delimitation, certain
principles are applicable is to say that those same principles should also direct the
Court in its assessment of what is an equitable solution.
(2) Relevant agreements between Romania and Ukraine
7.9. Several agreements have been concl uded between Romania and the USSR and,
respectively, Ukraine that pertain to their common border. Apart of the
Romanian-Soviet Procès Verbaux, the pr ovisions of which wh ere presented in
detail in paragraphs 4.3 – 4.26 above, there are three agreements concluded
between Romania and Ukraine relevant fo r the common border, as specified in
paragraph 1.4 above. Their substantive pr ovisions, and the relationship between
them, must now be described.
(a) The Romanian-Soviet Procès Verbaux concluded in 1949, 1963 and 1974
7.10. The Romanian-Soviet Procès Verbau x concluded in 1949, 1963 and 1974 (both
the general detailed descriptions of the Romanian-Soviet border and the
individual Procès Verbaux drafted for pa rticular border signs, particularly for
border signs no.1438 (buoy) and 1439 (beac on)), as well as the 1954 Act
referring to the border sign no. 1439 esta blished the trace of the land and the
river border between Romania and the USSR and also the maritime boundary
from the final point of the river border unt il the area in the vicinity of Serpents’
Island (on the 12 mile exterior arc surrounding Serpents’ Island).
7.11. The provisions of the said Procès Verbaux have already been presented in detail.
Their significance and consequences upon the present case will be presented
further in Chapter 11 of this Memorial. For the moment it is sufficient to
emphasise that these documents represent agreements in force between Romania
and Ukraine, establishing the initial segment of the maritime boundary between
them, from Point F (the final point of the boundary delimiting the territorial seas
of the two States) on the 12-mile arc around Serpents’ Island.
78 (b) The Treaty on Relations
7.12. As noted above, the Treaty on Relations foresaw the conclusion of a separate
treaty on the border regime between the two States and the settlement of the
problem of the delimitation of their continental shel f and exclusive economic
zones.
7.13. Article 2 of the Treaty on Relations provides:
“1. The Contracting Parties, in accordance with the principles
and norms of international law and with the principles of the
Helsinki Final Act, reaffirm that the existing border between
them is inviolable and therefore, that they shall refrain, now and
in the future, from any attempt against this border, as well as
from any demand for, or act of, seizure and usurpation of part or
all the territory of the other Contracting Party.
2. The Contracting Parties shall c onclude a separate Treaty on
the regime of the border between the two states and shall settle
the problem of the delimitation of their continental shelf and
exclusive economic zones in the Black Sea on the basis of the
principles and procedures agre ed upon by exchange of letters
between the Ministers of Foreign Affairs, which shall take place
simultaneously with the signature of the Treaty. The
understandings included in this exchange of letters shall enter
into force simultaneously with the entry into force of this
Treaty.” TPFPT
7.14. Of particular significance here is the stip ulation contained in the last sentence.
This refers specifically to “[t]he unders tandings included in this exchange of
letters”, prominent among them the agreement on the principles applicable in the
delimitation. The Treaty on Relations and the Additional Agreement were
evidently considered as a “package” re flecting significant c oncessions made on
both sides.
97
TPPT Treaty on the Relations of Good Neighbourliness and Co-Operation between Romania and
Ukraine, signed at Constanţa, on 2 June 1997; 2159 United Nations Treaty Series 335 (Annex RM 1).
79 (c) The Additional Agreement
7.15. In addition to the 1982 UNCLOS, the princi ples recognised by the Parties in the
1997 Additional Agreement should be taken into account by the Court in
delimiting the continental shelf and the exclusive economic zone beyond the 12
nm arc around Serpents’ Island. They have th e status of agreed principles. It is
significant that they acquired that status at a time when Ukraine was not a party
to the 1982 UNCLOS. This Convention was not applicable at that time in
relation to the delimitation, and (absent la ter Ukrainian ratification) might never
have become applicable.
7.16. The Additional Agreement took the form of an exchange of letters between the
Ministers of Foreign Affairs of Romania and Ukraine, as envisaged by the Treaty
on Relations. In its paragraph 4, the Additional Agreement foresaw the
conclusion of a negotiated agreement on th e delimitation of the continental shelf
and the exclusive economic zones between the two States in the Black Sea and
proscribed the following principles as applicable to the negotiations:
“a) The principle stated in ar ticle 121 of the United Nations’
Convention on the Law of the Sea of December 10, 1982, as
applied in the practice of state and in international jurisprudence;
b) The principle of the equidistance line in areas submitted to
delimitation where the coasts are adjacent and the principle of
the median line in areas where the coasts are opposite;
c) The principle of equity a nd the method of proportionality,
as they are applied in the practi ce of state and the decisions of
international courts regarding the delimitation of continental
shelf and exclusive economic zones;
d) The principle according to wh ich neither of the Contracting
Parties shall contest the sovere ignty of the other Contracting
Party over any part of its territory adjacent to the zone submitted
to delimitation;
80 e) The principle of taking in to consideration the special
98
circumstances of the zone submitted to delimitation.” TPFPT
Paragraph (f) contains an undertaking by both States to refrain from exploitation
of the resources of the continental shel f and the exclusive economic zones from
the delimitation area, pending a solution of the problem, unless by agreement
via joint exploitation. Paragraph (g) pr ovides that the negotiations were to
begin as soon as possible and in any cas e within three months from the entry
into force of the Treaty on Relations. Paragraph (h) records the agreement
between the two Parties that the problem of the delimitation of the continental
shelf and exclusive economic zones might be submitted to this Court, subject to
the fulfilment of certain conditions, as described in Chapter 1.
(d) The 2003 Border Regime Treaty
7.17. As set out above in Chapter 4 of this Memorial, the 2003 Border Regime Treaty
was concluded as foreseen by the 1997 agreements, and delimited the land and
sea boundary between the two States out to the point where the outer limit of
Romania’s territorial sea meets the 12 nm arc drawn around Serpents’ Island at
Point F.
7.18. As also set above, the agreed maritime boundary adopts the boundary as in
force between Romania and the USSR upon the independence of Ukraine in
1991. This boundary is that under the September 1949 Procès Verbal (as
incorporated in the 1949 and, subsequently, the 1961 Border Regime Treaty)
and the subsequent Procès Verbaux, in particular, the 1963 Procès Verbal and
the 1974 Procès Verbal together with th e accompanying individual descriptions
of the border points.
TPPT Agreement Additional to the Treaty on the Relations of Good Neighbourliness and Co-
Operation between Romania and Ukraine, concluded by exchange of letters between the Ministers of
Foreign Affairs of Romania and Ukraine, done on 2 June 1997; 2159 United Nations Treaty Series 357
(Romanian letter), 363 (Ukrainian counterpart) (Annex RM 2).
817.19. The question of territorial sea delimitation is not before the Court. That being
so, the principal importance of the 2003 Bo rder Regime Treaty (other than in
relation to the question of the jurisdiction of the Court) is that the final point of
the boundary defined by the 2003 Treaty (Point F) constitutes the starting point
of the delimitation line which the Cour t is called upon to establish. The 2003
Treaty stops at Point F because it rela tes exclusively to the land, river and
maritime boundary up to the outer limit of the territorial sea. Agreement on the
territorial sea boundary is entirely without prejudice to earlier agreements on the
character of the 12 nm boundary around Se rpents’ Island, and the criteria to be
applied in completing the maritime delimitation.
(3) Conclusions
7.20. In accordance with the primacy of agreem ent in delimitation, to the extent that
agreements have been concluded betw een Romania and Ukraine (or between
Romania and the USSR, which bind Ukraine by way of succession) delimiting
the maritime zones between them outside the territorial sea, those agreements
are controlling as to the respective entitlements of the Parties.
7.21. Further, the principles recognised by the Parties in the 1997 Additional
Agreement fall to be applied by the Court in delimiting the continental shelf and
the exclusive economic z ones and govern the delim itation where the boundary
has not already been so agreed.
82 CHAPTER 8
THE PRINCIPLES IDENTIFIED IN THE ADDITIONAL
AGREEMENT
(1) Introduction
8.1 The principles identified in paragraph 4 of the Additional Agreement are
evidently not disjoined from the general international law of maritime
delimitation as applied by this Court and by arbitral tribunals. Two of these
principles specifically refer to Stat e practice and international case-law
(principles a) and c)), and the application of the three others cannot ignore these
elements as well. Nonetheless the items selected for specific mention in
paragraph 4 are significant, as is the order in which they are listed. They reflect
an appreciation by the Parties, with knowle dge of the dispute, as to the most
relevant factors.
8.2 This Chapter will analyse each of th ese principles, having regard to the
language of paragraph 4 and any consider ations arising from State practice or
the jurisprudence which may be relevant to the present dispute. The detailed
application of the principles to the geogr aphical situation before the Court will
be discussed in Part III of this Memorial.
8.3 The application of the principles provided for by the Additional Agreement
leads to a method of delimitation in fullconformity with the jurisprudence of
various international courts, mainly with the recent case-law of this Court. This
method consists in first drawing a provi sional equidistant/median line between
the relevant coasts of the two Stat es, and then analysing the relevant
circumstances of the delimitation area and eventually shifting the position of the
equidistant/median line to accommodate them in order to achieve an equitable
result. (2) Article 121 of the 1982 UNCLOS
8.4 Paragraph 4 a) of the Additional Agreement refers to:
“The principle stated in artic le 121 of the United Nations’
Convention on the Law of the Sea of December 10, 1982, as
applied in the practice of st ates and in international
jurisprudence”.
8.5 Article 121 of the 1982 UNCLOS lays down the regime of islands and in
particular the ability of islands to genera te maritime zones for the coastal State.
It provides:
“Regime of islands
1. An island is a naturally formed area of land, surrounded
by water, which is above water at high tide.
2. Except as provided for in para graph 3, the territorial sea,
the contiguous zone, the exclusive economic zone and the
continental shelf of an island ar e determined in accordance with
the provisions of this Convention applicable to other land
territory.
3. Rocks which cannot sustain human habitation or
economic life of their own shall have no exclusive economic
zone or continental shelf.”
(a) The origins of Article 121
(i) The travaux préparatoires of the 1982 UNCLOS
8.6 The origins of the present Article 121 of the 1982 UNCLOS are to be found in
the different approaches on the role of islands in maritime delimitations that
were promoted by various States in the process of drafting and adoption of the
text. The travaux préparatoires show the intention of some States to clarify the
rules applicable to the entitlement of islands to maritime areas. Thus, the 1958
Convention on the Territorial Sea and Contiguous Zone and the 1958
Convention on the Continental Shelf retained a “non-discriminatory” regime for
84 all islands TPFPT in spite of proposals to define islands as being “capable of
100
effective occupation and control” TPF PT
8.7 During the Third United Nations Conference on the Law of the Sea, delegations
showed concern for limiting th e possibility of small features like rocks, islets
and small islands to generate important areas of continental shelf and exclusive
economic zones. Thus, the Ambassador of Malta strongly criticized the
“possibility of States sovereign over isles like Clipperton, Guam,
Açores, Saint Helen and Easter Island to extend their jurisdiction
101
over millions of square kilometres […]” TPF FPT
8.8. Romania assumed a leading role among the States that argued for a limited
effect of small features to generate maritime spaces. Romania’s approach on the
capacity of islands to generate maritim e spaces and on the role that maritime
features have to be given in maritime delimitations was consistent, public and
102
influential in the adoption of Article 121 TPF . Romania’s determination in this
respect was openly driven by its preoccupation that the new instrument
governing the law of the sea should reflect its position as to Serpents’ Island not
having any effect on the delimitation of the exclusive economic zones and the
continental shelf in the Black Sea.
99
TPPT Article 10 of the 1958 Convention on the Territorial Sea and Contiguous Zone granted
territorial sea to any permanent above-water elevation. Article 1 of the 1958 Convention on the
Continental Shelf made no distinction between the continental shelf of continental coasts and that of
islands.
100
TP PT Proposal of Sir Hersch Lauterpacht during the International Law Commission debates, 1954,
Yearbook of the International Law Commission , 1954, I, p. 92. The proposal was submitted also by the
United Kingdom, Australia, New Zeeland, India and South Africa during the 1930 Codification
Conference – Base de Discussion, Conférence pour la codification du droit international de la Société
des Nations, Vol. II (Eaux territoriales), Doc. C 74 M 39, 1929 V, Geneva, 1929.
TP1PT Official Documents, United Nations, General Assembly, First Commission, 22 Pd Session, p. 10,
para. 67.
TP2PT See Robert Kolb, "L’interprétation de l’article 121, paragraphe 3, de la Convention de Montego
Bay sur le droit de la mer: Les rochers qui ne se prêtent pas à l’habitation humaine ou à une vie
économique propre…", Annuaire Français de Droit International XL, 1994, Editions de CNRS, Paris, p.
891: "It's from the junction of the Romanian-Turkish and African proposals that Article 121 paragraph 3
was born" (« C’est de la jonction des propositions roumano - turques et africaines que naîtra l’article 121
paragraphe 3. »).
858.9 Thus, at the 1973 session of the Sea- Bed Committee of the Conference on the
Law of the Sea, Romania proposed the in troduction of a new ar ticle, addressing
the maritime areas surrounding islets and small islands, which read as follows:
“1. Islets and small islands, uninhabited and without
economic life, which are situated on the continental shelf of the
coast, do not possess any of the shelf or other marine space of
the same nature.
2. Such islands may have waters – of their own or forming part
of the territorial sea of the coas t – the extent of which shall be
determined by agreement, taking into account all the
circumstances affecting the maritime area concerned and all
relevant geographical, geological and other features. The waters
thus determined shall not, in a ny event, affect marine spaces
103
which belong to the State or to neighboring States.” TPF FPT
8.10. The 1973 Romanian proposal was the fi rst document of the Conference to
propose the criterion of economic life for a feature to be entitled to maritime
104
areas TPF F.T
8.11. At the second session in 1974, Romania suggested that only islands, and not low-
tide elevations, isle ts or small uninha bited islands without economic life and
situated outside the territorial sea, were to be taken into consideration in
delimiting ocean space between neighbouring States TPF5F.T
8.12. Further, Romania proposed a definition for “islets” and “islands similar to an
2 106
islet”, on the basis of size (l ess, or greater, than 1 km P) TPF PT Islands similar to
islets were restricted to any island “which is not or cannot be inhabited
TP3PT Document A/AC.138/SC.II/L.53, reproduced in III Sea-Bed Committee Report, 28 General
Assembly Official Records (1973), Supp. No 21, 106 (Romania), see also United Nations Convention on
the Law of the Sea 1982 – A Commentary, Martinus Nijhoff Publishers, 2002, vol III, 324-39.
TP4PT Syméon Karagiannis, "Les rochers que ne se prêtent pas à l’habitation humaine ou à une vie
économique propre et le droit de la mer", Revue Belge de Droit International, 1996/2, Éditions Bruylant,
Bruxelles, p. 574.
105
TP PT Document A/CONF.62/C.2/L.18 (1974), article 2, paragraphs 2-5, III Official Records 195
(Romania).
TP6PT Document A/CONF. 62/C.2/L.53 (1974) articles 1 and 2, III Official Records 228 (Romania).
86 107
(permanently) or which does not or cannot have its own economic life”. TPFFPThe
proposal stated that:
“1. In principle, a State may not invoke the existence, in one
of its maritime zones, of islets or islands similar to islets, as
defined in article 1, for the pur pose of extending the marine
spaces which belong to its coasts.
2. Where such elevations of land are situated along the coast
of the same State, in immediate proximity thereto, they shall be
taken into consideration, in accordance with the provisions of
this Convention, for the purpose of establishing the baseline
from which the breadth of the territorial sea is measured.
3. Where an islet or island simila r to an islet is situated in
the territorial sea of the same St ate but very close to its outer
limit, the State in question may reasonably extend its territorial
waters seaward or establish an additional maritime zone for the
protection of lighthouses or other installations on such islet or
island. The additional zones thus established shall in no way
affect the marine spaces belonging to the coasts of the
neighboring State or States.
4. Islets or islands similar to islets which are situated
beyond the territorial sea, on the continental shelf or in the
economic zone of the same State, may have around them or
around some of their sectors secur ity areas or even territorial
waters in so far this is without prejudice to the marine spaces
which belong to the coasts of the neighboring State or States.”
8.13. At the eleventh session (1982), Romania proposed the addition of a new
paragraph (4) to article 121, reading:
“4. Uninhabited islets should not have any effects on the
maritime spaces belonging to the main coasts of the States
concerned” TPFFPT
The representative of Romania explai ned that the proposal was intended to
“prevent any State from encroaching on the maritime zones of another State by
109
invoking the existence of uninhabited islands in the delimitation area” TPF.PT
107
108PT Document A/CONF. 62/C.2/L.53 (1974) articles1 and 2, III Official Records 228 (Romania).
TP PT Document A/CONF.62/L.118 (1982), article 121, paragraph 4, XVI Official Records 225
(Romania).
878.14. Proposals of other delegations also supported this position. Thus:
a) Malta proposed the definition of an “isl et” as a “naturally formed area of
land, less than one square kilometre in area, surrounded by water, which is
above water at high tide”. According to Malta’s pr oposal, States could not
claim jurisdiction over maritime spaces by virtue of sovereignty or control
over islets TPF .PT
b) A group of 14 African States submitted a proposal that lim ited the right of
all islands (not only rocks or islets) to maritime spaces:
“Maritime spaces of islands shall be determined according to
equitable principles, taking into account all relevant factors and
circumstances, including, inter alia:
- the size of the islands;
- the population or the absence thereof;
- their contiguity to the principal territory;
- whether or not they are situated on the continental shelf of
another territory;
- their geological and geomorphological structure and
111
configuration” TPF .PT
The proposal was re-iterated by another group of five States TPF .PT
c) Turkey proposed that paragraph (3) of what become ar ticle 121 would be
drafted “Rocks shall have no marine space of their own”. The Turkish
proposal only allowed islands with a surface of at least one tenth of the State
109 th
TP PT 169 P PPlenary Meeting (1982), para 53, XVI Official Records, 97.
TP0PT Document A/AC.138/SC.II/L.28, articles 1 and 9, reproduced in III Sea-Bed Committee Report,
28 General Assembly Official Records (1973), Supp. No 21, at 35, 37 and 40 (Malta).
111
TP PT Document A/AC.138/SC.II/L.40 and Corr. 1-3, article XII, reproduced in III Sea-Bed
Committee Report, 28 General Assembly Official Records (1973), Supp. No 21, at 87, 89 (Algeria,
Cameroon, Ghana, Ivory Coast, Kenya, Liberia, Madagascar, Mauritius, Senegal, Sierra Leone, Somalia,
Sudan, Tunisia, Tanzania).
TP2PT Document A/AC.138/SC.II/L.43 reproduced in n III Sea-Bed Committee Report, 28 General
Assembly Official Records (1973), Supp. No 21, at 98 (Cameroon, Kenya, Madagascar, Tunisia,
Turkey).
88 to which they belonged to have a co ntinental shelf and exclusive economic
zone TPF .PT
d) The text adopted on 28 April 1975 by the informal group on islands stated
expressly that in order to be entitled to continental shelf and exclusive
economic zone, an island should be able to sustain population on a
114
permanent basis TPF PTThe group recalled the position of the Turkish
delegation, stating that “military or poli ce installations are not sufficient for
generating exclusive economic zones”.
e) Ireland submitted a draft article on delimiting the continental shelf between
neighbouring States, together with an explanatory note, stating that:
“It is generally agreed that offshore islands should not be used as
the base-point for measuring an equidistance boundary line in all
circumstances”.
8.15. These initiatives show the broad support of the Third United Nations Conference
on the Law of the Sea for the approach put forward by Romania and the like-
minded States. Moreover, the proposals submitted during the Conference show
that the intention of the parties was not to limit the effect of Article 121 (3) to
what it can be strictly understood by “rocks”.
8.16. The text of article 121 (3) a ppeared for the first time in the present form in the
Texte unique de negotiation (officieux) , elaborated by the Presidents of the
115
Conference in 1975 TPF PTThe article remained unchanged in the revised
116
negotiating texts of 1976, 1977, 1979 and the 1980 Draft Convention TPF PT Even
though the text of the present Article 121 does not contain the precise language
TP3PT Document A/CONF.62/C.2/L.55, Official Records, vol. III, p. 266.
114
TP PT Platzöder, Third United Nations Conference on the Law of the Sea Documents, Oceana
Publications, Dobbs Ferry, New York, vol. IV, p. 222.
TP5PT Article 132 corresponded to the present article 121. Document A/CONF. 62/WP.8.
116
TP PT Documents A/CONF. 62/WP.8 Rev.1, A/C ONF. 62/WP.10, A/CONF. 62/WP.10 Rev.1,
A/CONF. 62/WP.10 Rev.3.
89 of the Romanian proposals as submitted during the Conference (which is normal
in the context of a multilateral negotiation of this kind), the travaux
préparatoires demonstrate that this text shoul d be read as c overing not only
rocks stricto senso, but also any minor maritime feature unable to sustain human
habitation or economic life of its own.
8.17. It is important to note th e position of the USSR c oncerning article 121. During
the 11 PhPSession (1982), when various proposals to amend the existing text were
made (among them a British proposal to suppress paragraph 3), the USSR joined
other delegations in opposition TPF .PT
8.18. It is also important to note that the USSR and the Ukrainian Soviet Socialist
Republic gave their agreement on the text , based also on the Russian official
version of article 121(3), whose reading is even clearer than the English, French
and Spanish ones. Thus, the words “ cannot sustain […] econom ic life of their
own” read in Russian “не пригодны для […] самостоятельной хозяйственной
деятельности”, which may be literally translated al “ self-sustaining economic
activity” (emphasis added). This reinforces the interpretation that the “economic
118
life” - criterion should be interpreted strictly TPF PT
8.19. In conclusion, the travaux préparatoires show that the intention of the parties
was to embrace the new approach towards entitlements of islands to maritime
spaces, which aimed at more clearly regulating these entitlements. Moreover, the
travaux préparatoires show that States intended to extend the application of the
present article 121 (3) to a larger range of features situated above waters at high
tide. Romania’s position to this effect was consistent and public.
117 th
TP PT Official Records, Vol. XVI, 169 P PSession, paragraph 32 s, p. 105; Official Records, Vol. XVI,
170 PPSession, para. 27, p. 111.
TP8PT Thus, in an article published in 1999, J. Charney notes that native Russian speakers consulted
seem to disagree as to whether this text would permit the purchase of necessities from outside sources –
see Jonathan I.Charney, “Rocks That Cannot Sustain Human Habitation”, 93 AJIL 863, October 1999.
90(ii) Romania’s Declaration concerning Article 121
8.20. Upon signature of the 1982 UNCLOS, Romania made the following declaration:
“1. As a geographically disadva ntaged country bordering a sea
poor in living resources, the Socialist Republic of Romania
reaffirms the necessity to devel op international cooperation for
the exploitation of the living resources of the economic zones, on
the basis of just and equitable ag reements that should ensure the
access of the countries from this category to the fishing resources
in the economic zones of other regions or subregions.
2. The Socialist Republic of Ro mania reaffirms the right of
coastal States to adopt measures to safeguard their security
interests, including the right to adopt national laws and
regulations relating to the passa ge of foreign warships through
their territorial sea.
The right to adopt such measures is in full conformity with
articles 19 and 25 of the Convention, as it is also specified in the
Statement by the President of the United Nations Conference on
the Law of the Sea in the plenar y meeting of the Conference on
26 April 1982.
3. The Socialist Republic of Romania states that according to the
requirements of equity – as it results from articles 74 and 83 of
the Convention on the Law of the Sea – the uninhabited islands
without economic life can in no way affect the delimitation of
the maritime spaces belonging to the mainland coasts of the
coastal States.”
8.21. When depositing its instrument of ra tification on 17 December 1996, Romania
re-iterated this declaration.
8.22. Neither the USSR nor Ukraine made any comment or objection to the Romanian
declaration. Nor did any other State.
8.23. Article 309 of the 1982 Convention prohibits States making reservations to the
Convention. Nevertheless, declarations al low States to make clear their position
on the interpretation or application of the text. In this sense, Romania’s
declaration reinforces the interpretation of article 121 (3) that results from the
travaux préparatoires, that the term “rocks” should be interpreted in an extensive
91 way, as covering any and all minor maritime features incapable of sustaining
human habitation or economic life of their own.
8.24. Romania's declaration does not alter, m odify or supersede any provision of the
1982 UNCLOS. It does not represent a reserv ation in the sense of articles 2-(1)-
(d) and 19-21 of the Vienna Convention on the Law of Treaties.
8.25. According to the definition in Article 2 -(1)-(d) of the Vienna Convention on the
Law of Treaties,
“’Reservation’ means a unilateral statement, however phrased or
named, made by a State when signing, ratifying, accepting,
approving or acceding to a treaty, whereby it purports to exclude
or to modify the legal effect of cer tain provisions of the treaty in
their application to that State” (emphasis added).
In the present case, Romania did not have the intention to exclude or to modify
the effect of any provision of the 1982 UN CLOS. Nevertheless, its declaration is
not without legal effect both for Romania and the other contracting parties.
8.26. International law recognises the possibility of such interpretative declarations,
which correspond in all respects to the definition recently adopted by the
International Law Commission in its Guide to Practice on Reservation to
Treaties:
“’Interpretative declaration’ means a unilateral declaration,
however phrased or named, made by a State or by an
international organization, wh ereby that State or that
organization purports to clarify th e meaning or scope attributed
by the declarant to the treaty or to certain of its provisions”.
This is precisely the legal effect of th e Romanian declaration, which constitutes,
therefore, an interpretative declaration and not a reservation.
8.27. As explained by the International Law Co mmission, the controlling effect is the
“legal effect [that the unilateral statement] purports to produce” and
92 “[w]hen a treaty prohibits reserv ation to all [as does Article 399
of the 1982 UNCLOS] or certain of its provisions, a unilateral
statement formulated in respect thereof by a State […] shall be
presumed not to constitute a reservation, except where it purports
to exclude or modify the legal effects of certain provisions of the
treaty or of the treaty as a whole, with respect to certain specific
aspects in their application to its author”.
8.28. Furthermore, the conformity of the Romanian Declaration with the object and the
purpose of the 1982 UNCLOS has been acknowledged in the literature. Thus, in
an article on the declarations made by the States signatories of the 1982
UNCLOS written in 1983, Daniel Vignes underlines that
“Concerning the Romanian declaration, as far as it refers to
uninhabited islands…and not to rocks (lik e Article 121.3), it
seems to maintain a certain logics regarding the jurisprudence
on delimitations, since, such isla nds being assimilated to the
rocks of paragraph 3, which ha ve neither exclusive economic
zone, nor shelf, it seems normal that they not be taken into
account in a delimitation of exclusive economic zones or
continental shelf.” TPFFPT
8.29. Articles 74, 83 and 121 (3) became binding as between Romania and Ukraine by
virtue of the 1997 Additional Agreemen t. Ukraine had notice of Romania’s
declaration, made in 1982 a nd re-iterated in 1996. Ukraine did not react to this
declaration. Therefore, the law represented by article 74, 83 and 121 of the 1982
UNCLOS should be applied in light of the interpreta tion stated in Romania’s
declaration.
8.30. Moreover, when ratifying the 1982 UNCLOS in 1999, Ukraine made no
declaration or objection to Romania’s declaration. The 1982 UNCLOS, in force
between Romania and Ukraine since 25 August 1999, must be applied and
119
TPPT « Pour ce qui concerne la déclaration roumaine, à ceci près qu’elle vise les îles inhabitées…et
pas les rochers (comme l’article 121.3), elle semble conserver une certaine logique à l’égard de la
jurisprudence sur la délimitation puisque, de telles îles étant assimilées aux rochers du paragraphe 3,
qui n’ont ni zone économique exclusive ni plateau, il semble normal qu’elles ne soient pas prises en
compte dans une délimitation de zone économique exclusive ou de plateau continental ».- Daniel Vignes,
"Les déclarations faites par les Etats signataires de la Convention des Nations Unies sur le droit de la
mer, sur la base de l’article 310 de cette Convention", A.F.D.I. 1983, p. 733.
93 interpreted by the Court on the basis of the only interpretation accepted by
Romania, as stated in the above quoted declaration.
(b) Significance of the applicability of Article 121
8.31. The choice of Article 121 “as applied in State practice and in international case-
law” as the first principle of delimitati on to be applied by the Parties shows the
great importance they attached to it in the context of the present case. This
significance is even greater as certain factors are further analysed.
8.32. At the time the 1997 Additional Agreement was concluded, the 1982 UNCLOS
was not in force between Romania and Ukraine, the latter not yet having ratified
it. Instead, the law applicable between the two Parties was represented by the
first and fourth of the 1958 Geneva Conventions. The definition of “island”, as
well as the entitlement of islands to maritime areas, had been clearly established
by the 1958 Conventions. On these aspects, the first two para graphs of Article
121 of the 1982 UNCLOS brought nothing new.
8.33. By contrast, the third paragraph of Article 121 represented something new in the
relations between Romania and Ukraine, as its provisions had no similar
precedent in the applicable law between the Parties and, in 1997, its status under
customary international law was not beyond doubt or argument. The specific
reference in the Additional Agreement to Article 121 has the significance of
putting beyond question the direct relevan ce of its third para graph, referring to
rocks which cannot sustain human habita tion or economic life of their own. The
only feature of the delimitation area to which this paragraph could refer is
Serpents’ Island.
8.34. At the time when the Additional Agreement was signed and entered into force,
Ukraine was well aware of the declarat ion made by Romania upon its signature
94 of the 1982 UNCLOS, and confirmed upon ratification TPF0PTUnder these
circumstances, Ukraine’s acceptance of the reference to Article 121 as one of the
principles to be applied in delimitation, clearly indicate that Ukraine accepted the
applicability of the thir d paragraph of Article 121, as interpreted by the
Romanian declaration, to the present situation.
8.35. In 1997 Ukraine made no suggestion that Se rpents’ Island was entitled to larger
areas of exclusive economic zone and c ontinental shelf lying to the south and
south-east beyond the 12 nm limit previously agreed. If Ukraine had wished to
keep such a claim alive – knowing, as it must have done, that the Soviet Union
had maintained it in earlier negotiations , and knowing, at the same time, the
content of the Romanian declaration made upon signature, and confirmed upon
ratification, of the 1982 UNCLOS – the onus was on it to do so.
(c) Article 121 in the jurisprudence of this Court and other tribunals
8.36. Paragraph 4 a) of the Additional Agr eement refers to Article 121 of the
UNCLOS as applied by State practice and international case-law (emphasis
added). Consequently, the relevant international jurisprudence needs to be
analysed.
8.37. In the case concerning Maritime Delimitation and Territorial Questions Between
Qatar and Bahrain, the Court stated that that the “legal definition of an island”
was that contained in Article 121(1) of the 1982 UNCLOS and Article 10(1) of
121
the 1958 Convention as a matter of general international law. TPFFIn the
circumstances of the case, there was no reason for the Court to make any
reference to Article 121(3), and it did not do so.
120
121PT See paras. 8.20-8.30 of this Chapter.
TP PT Maritime Delimitation and Territorial Questi ons Between Qatar and Bahrain (Qatar v.
Bahrain), Judgment, ICJ Reports 2001 , p. 99 (para. 195). Neither Qatar nor Bahrain was party to the
1958 Convention; and only Bahrain was party to the 1982 UNCLOS (see ibid., p. 91 (para. 167)),
although both agreed that most provisions of the 1982 UNCLOS relevant to the dispute represented
custom (ibid.)
958.38. It may also be noted that the Denm ark/Iceland Jan Ma yen Conciliation
Commission expressed the view that Article 121 in its entirety “reflect[ed] the
present status of international law”, and this even before the adoption of the final
122
text of the 1982 UNCLOS. TPF FPT
8.39. By contrast this Court has yet to pr onounce on the application of Article 121(3)
directly, although reference was made to the provision in passing in the Jan
Mayen case. TPFFPJan Mayen itself was of course much too large a feature to
qualify as a “rock” for the purposes of Article 121(3).
8.40. It may also be noted in this context that in the Continental Shelf (Libyan Arab
Jamahiriya/Malta) case, the Court, having early in the judgment described the
124
small island of Filfla as an “uninhabited rock”, TPFFthen held as follows:
“An immediate qualification of th e median line which the Court
considers must be made concerns the basepoints from which it is
to be constructed. The lin e put forward by Malta was
constructed from the low-water mark of the Libyan coast, but
with regard to the Maltese coast from straight baselines (inter
alia) connecting the is land of Malta to the uninhabited islet of
Filfla. The Court does not expr ess any opinion on whether the
inclusion of Filfla in the Maltese baselines was legally justified;
but in any event the baselines as determined by coastal States are
not per se identical with the point s chosen on a coast to make it
possible to calculate the area of continental shelf appertaining to
that State. In this case, the e quitableness of an equidistance line
depends on whether the precaution is taken of eliminating the
disproportionate effect of certain ‘islets, rocks and minor coastal
projections’, to use the langua ge of the Court in its 1969
Judgment […]. The Court thus finds it equitable not to take
122
TP PT Conciliation Commission on the Continental Shelf Area Between Iceland and Jan Mayen :
Report and Recommendations to the Governments of Iceland and Norway, (1981) International Legal
Materials, vol. 20, p. 797, at pp. 803-804.
123
TP PT Maritime Delimitation in the Area between Gree nland and Jan Mayen (Denmark v. Norway),
Judgment, ICJ Reports 1993, pp. 64-65 (para. 60) and pp. 73-74, (para. 80). Cf. the declaration of Judge
Evensen who regarded Art. 121(3) as representing custom. The reference to Art. 121(3) was made in the
context of argument by Denmark not that Jan Mayen was not capable of generating a continental shelf or
EEZ, but that, by analogy with Art. 121(3), Jan Mayen should be given reduced weight in delimiting the
respective maritime zones appertaining to Greenland and Jan Mayen in the light of the fact that it could
not “ sustain and has not sustained human habitation or economic life of its own ” (ICJ Reports 1993, pp.
12474 (para. 60)).
TP PT Continental Shelf (Libyan Arab Jamahiriya/Malta) , Judgment, ICJ Reports 1985 , p. 20 (para.
15).
96 account of Filfla in the calculation of the provisional median line
between Malta and Libya…” TPF5FPT
In the Libya/Malta case, the 1982 UNCLOS was not applicable, given that
neither party had ratified it and that in any case it had not at that time acquired
126
the requisite number of signatures in order to enter into force. TPF FPThe case was
accordingly not argued in terms of whet her Filfla was a “rock” within the
127
meaning of Article 121(3) of the 1982 UNCLOS TPF PT Nevertheless, the solution
adopted by the Court arrived at the same result.
TP5PT Continental Shelf (Libyan Arab Jamahiriya/Malta), Judgment, ICJ Reports 1985, p. 48 (para.
64), quoting North Sea Continental Shelf (Federal Republic of Germany/Denmark; Federal Republic of
Germany/Netherlands), Judgment, ICJ Reports 1969, p. 36 (para. 57).
TP6PT Continental Shelf (Libyan Arab Jamahiriya/Malta) , Judgment, ICJ Reports 1985 , p. 29 (para.
26).
TP7 PT There are striking similarities existing betw een Serpents’ Island (see Chapter 9 of this
Memorial) and Filfla, which is a rocky formation, w ith little or no soil, having as the main geographic
feature a sort of plateau, covering an area of 2.5 hectares. A description of Filfla can be found at the
internet address http://www.geocities.com/diomedea.geo/Filfla.HTML .TH
The description posted at the mentioned internet address reads as follows:
“Filfla is barren, there are no trees, but a variety of shrubs and plants managed to take root (…)
Insect life also abounds and one can find: ants, flies and moths. Spiders and scorpions are also
present. Due to isolation, Filfla produced an interesting variety of animal lspecies. In the Maltese
Islands we find one species of Wall Lizard (Podarcis filfolensis), Filfla hosts the nominate race
which is larger than the others found on the other islands. It is black in colour with various blue and
green spots. A top snail Helicella spratti var. desp otti is endemic to Filfla. A cricket and a beetle
found also on Filfla, both have a limited distribution on the Maltese Islands.
The most important animal group found on Filfla belongs to the avian family, particularly the
seabirds. No less than four species have been found breeding on Filfla. The largest is the Yellow-
Legged Gull Larus cachinnans, nesting mainly on the top of the island. Some 150 pairs nest on
Filfla. The birds start arriving in December and breeding starts in March, where two to three eggs
are laid in a shallow nest on the ground. The members of the Procellariidae have been found
breeding on Filfla; Cory's Shearwater Calonectris diomedea, Levantine Shearwater and the Storm
Petrel Hydrobates pelagicus. These are all pelagic birds, coming ashore only to breed, and they do
this in complete darkness. The characteristic feature of these birds is the two tubular nostrils at the
base of the bill. About 50 pairs of Cory's Shearwater lay their single egg beneath boulders. They
arrive in February and the young leave the colony by the second week of October. The smaller
Levantine Shearwater possibly breeds in very small numbers. But, the most important bird on Filfla
is the Storm Petrel (Kangu ta' Filfla in Maltese). In the not so distant past it was believed that it was
to be found only on Filfla in the Maltese archipelago”.
Thus, far from being a mere piece of stone protruding from the waters, Filfla has a fairly significant
fauna and flora.
Also, on Filfla a small chapel dedicated to the Assumption of Our Lady was built inside a cave in
1343, where, every Sunday, mass was held for the fishermen fishing around this maritime formation.
Another resemblance with the Serpents’ Island is also noticeable: the erosion process (in accordance
with the commentary on the above mentioned website, “winter storms are washing away the underlaying
clay, and the coralline limestone topping it, breaks and falls into the waters”) or the dangers for
navigation (the same source notes that “berthing a boat is extremely dangerous, due to loose rocks and
boulders”).
978.41. As to State practice and the international case-law regarding the role of islands,
islets and other minor maritime feat ures in maritime delimitations more
generally, this will be analysed in deta il in paras. 8.86-8.123 of this Chapter,
dealing with maritime features as relevant/special circumstances in the context
of principle 4 e) of the Additional Agreement.
(3) The principle of equidistance: adjacent and opposite coasts
8.42. Paragraph 4 b) of the Additional Agreement refers to:
“b) The principle of the equidistance line in areas submitted
to delimitation where the coasts are adjacent and the principle of
the median line in areas where the coasts are opposite”.
8.43. Paragraph 4 b) addresses the general s ituation of adjacent and opposite coasts.
Having regard to the fact that only a single maritime feature impinges on the
delimitation area, and that this situ ation has already been addressed in
paragraph 4 a), it is evident that the focu s of paragraph 4 b) is the situation of
mainland coasts, whether opposite or adjacen t. In relation to such coasts, the
dominant principle is that of e quidistance, unless there are special
circumstances dictating some other solu tion. In paragraph 4 b) the Parties
specifically recognised this.
8.44. This Court in the Jan Mayen case concluded that “both for the continental shelf
and for the fishery zones in this case, it is proper to be gin the process of
delimitation by a median line provisionally drawn”, TPF8Fand then went on to
consider the factors which might require an adjustment to that provisional
129
line.TPF FPT
128
TP PT Maritime Delimitation in the Area between Gree nland and Jan Mayen (Denmark v. Norway),
Judgment, ICJ Reports 1993, p. 62 (para. 53). For the Court’s discussion of the appropriateness of use of
starting from a provisional median line, see ICJ Reports 1993, pp. 59-62, (paras. 49-53), referring to the
approach adopted by the Court in the Libya/Malta (Continental Shelf (Libyan Arab Jamahiriya/Malta),
ICJ Reports 1984, p. 13) and Gulf of Maine (Delimitation of the Maritime Boundary in the Gulf of Maine
129a, ICJ Reports 1984, p. 246).
TP PT ICJ Reports 1993, pp. 62-63 (paras. 54-56).
988.45. Similarly, in the Qatar/Bahrain case, having referred to the approach adopted in
the Jan Mayen case, the Court followed the same course, ruling that:
“For the delimitation of the maritime zones beyond the 12-mile zone
it will first provisionally draw an equidistance line and then consider
whether there are circumstances which must lead to an adjustment of
130
that line.” TPFFPT
8.46. In the Boundary Dispute between Dubai and Sharjah , the Arbitral Tribunal
applied the method of equi distance, which had been previously agreed upon by
the two parties. It stated that:
“this Court [wa]s satisfied that use of the equidistance method [wa]s
generally appropriate to, and requi red in, the present case and that
the delimitation of the maritime boundary between the Parties
beyond their respective territorial seas should properly be based
upon this method where that boundary [wa]s unaffected by the
presence of the island of Abu Musa which [wa]s the only “special
circumstance” of which account must be taken in the area
131
concerned”. TPFFPT
8.47. As the Court said in Cameroon/Nigeria:
“The Court has on various occa sions made it clear what the
applicable criteria, principles and rules of delimitation are when a
line covering several zones of coin cident jurisdictions is to be
determined. They are expresse d in the so-called equitable
principles/relevant circumstances method. This method, which is
very similar to the equidistan ce/special circumstances method
applicable in delimitation of the territorial sea, involves first drawing
an equidistance line, then consid ering whether there are factors
calling for the adjustment or shifting of that line in order to achieve
132
an equitable result.” TPF FPT
8.48. In the context of delimitations between opposite coasts, the equidistance
principle has a particular significance. Thus, the 1977 Anglo-French Court of
Arbitration observed that
130
TP PT Maritime Delimitation and Territorial Questions between Qatar and Bahrain (Qatar v.
Bahrain), Judgment, ICJ Reports 2001, p. 111 (para. 230).
TP1PT Dubai-Sharjah Border Arbitration(1981) I.L.R., vol. 91, p. 542 (paras. 672-673).
TP2PT Land and Maritime Boundary between Cameroon and Nigeria (Cameroon v. Nigeria;
Equatorial Guinea intervening), ICJ Reports 2002, judgment of 10 October 2002, para. 288.
99 “it seems …to be in accord not only with the legal rules
governing the continental shelf but also with State practice to
seek the solution in a method modifying or varying the
equidistance method rather than to have recourse to a wholly
different criterion of delimitation.” TPF FPT
8.49. In the Jan Mayen case, where the 1958 Geneva C onvention was applicable, the
Court, having referred to the 1977 decision of th e Anglo-French Court of
Arbitration, observed that:
“If the equidistance-special ci rcumstances rule of the 1958
Convention is, in the light of th is 1977 Decision, to be regarded
as expressing a general norm ba sed on equitable principles, it
must be difficult to find any ma terial difference—at any rate in
regard to delimitation between opposite coasts—between the
effect of Article 6 and the effect of the customary rule which also
134
requires a delimitation based on equitable principles.” TPFFPT
The Court went on to observe that:
“Prima facie, a median line delimitation between opposite coasts
results in general in an equita ble solution, particularly if the
coasts in question are nearly parallel. When, as in the present
case, delimitation is required between opposite coasts which are
insufficiently far apart for both to enjoy the full 200-mile
extension of continental shelf and other rights over maritime
spaces recognized by international law, the median line will be
equidistant also from the two 200-mile limits, and may prima
facie be regarded as effecting an equitable division of the
135
overlapping area.” TPF FPT
8.50. In the Libya/Malta case, the Court stated that:
“It is clear that, in these circumstances, the tracing of a median
line between those coasts, by wa y of a provisional step in
processes to be continued by other operations, is the most
judicious manner of proceeding with a view to the eventual
achievement of an equitable result”. TPFFPT
133
134PT RIAA vol. XVIII (1977), p. 116 (para. 249).
TP PT Maritime Delimitation in the Area between Gree nland and Jan Mayen (Denmark v. Norway),
Judgment, ICJ Reports 1993, p. 58 (para. 46).
135
136PT ICJ Reports 1993, p. 66 (para. 64).
TP PT ICJ Reports 1985, p. 47 (para. 62).
1008.51. Similarly, in the second phase of the ar bitration between Eritrea and Yemen, the
Arbitral Tribunal took “as its fundamental point of de parture, that, as between
137
opposite coasts, a median line obtains”. TPF FPThe Tribunal continued: T
“It is a generally accepted view, as is evidenced in both the
writings of commentators and in th e jurisprudence, that between
coasts that are opposite to each ot her the median or equidistance
line normally provides an equitable boundary in accordance with
the requirements of the Convention, and in particular those of its
Articles 74 and 83 which respectively provide for the equitable
delimitation of the EEZ and of the continental shelf between
States with opposite or adjacent coasts […]
The Tribunal has decided, after car eful consideration of all the
cogent and skilful arguments put before them by both Parties,
that the international boundary shall be a single all-purpose
boundary which is a median line and that it should, as far as
practicable, be a median line between the opposite mainland
coastlines. This solution is not only in accord w ith practice and
precedent in the like situations but is also one that is already
138
familiar to both Parties…” TPF FPT
8.52. In the Award in the Case Concerning the Delimitation of Portions of the Offshore
Areas between the Province of Nova Sc otia and the Province of Newfoundland
139
and Labrador, the Tribunal TPF Fnoted that
“[i]t has become normal to begin by considering the equidistance
line and possible adjustments, and to adopt some other method of
140
delimitation only if the circumstances justify it”. TPF FPT
8.53. From this analysis of the international jurisprudence, it is clear that the approach
can now be taken in terms of a pres umption of equidistance, although the
presumption can be displaced in a give n situation on grounds of equity by
reference to the special circumstances of the case.
TP7PT Eritrea-Yemen, Second Stage: Maritime Delimitation , Award of 17 December 1999,
International Legal Materials, vol. 40, p. 983 at p. 998 (para. 83).
TP8PT International Legal Materials, vol. 40, p. 1005 (paras 131-132). T
139
TP PT In this case the Tribunal was required to apply the principles of international law governing
maritime boundary delimitation with such modificati on as the circumstances require, as if the parties
were States subject to the same rights and obligations as the Government of Canada at all relevant times.
140
TP PT Newfoundland and Labrador v. Nova Scotia , Award of the Tribunal in the Second Phase,
Ottawa, 26 March 2002 (available at http://www.boundary-dispute.ca ), para. 2.28.
1018.54. The same international case-law establis hes that equidistan ce (both in the
resulting form of an equidistant line be tween adjacent coast and a median line
between opposite coasts) is normally calc ulated between the mainland coasts of
the respective parties; minor islands or other maritime formations are treated only
as relevant circumstances that might shift the equidistant/median line.
(4) The principle of equity and the method of proportionality
8.55. Paragraph c) of the Additional Agreement refers to:
“c) The principle of equity a nd the method of proportionality, as
they are applied in the practice of states and in the decisions of
international courts regarding the delimitation of continental
shelf and exclusive economic zones”.
This recognises that th e principle underlying Artic les 73 and 84 of the 1982
UNCLOS is that any delimitation must be equitable (i.e. it must “achieve an
equitable solution”), having regard to the circumstances of the case.
8.56. This proposition may be traced back to the Truman Proclamation, TPFFwhich spoke
in terms of delimitation in accordance with “equitable principles”. This approach
was in turn endorsed, togeth er with the primacy of ag reement, by this Court in
the North Sea Continental Shelf cases as the two principles underlying maritime
142
delimitation. TPFFPAs the Court said in 1969:
“delimitation is to be effected by agreement in accordance with
equitable principles, and taki ng account of all the relevant
143
circumstances…”. TPF FPT
8.57. The North Sea Continental Shelf cases were concerned only with the continental
shelf, but the same approach was subsequently taken in relation to the emergent
concept of the exclusive economic zones. Accordingly, refe rring to the term
141
142P(19046) AJIL Supp 45.
TP PT North Sea Continental Shelf (Federal Republic of Germany/Denmark; Federal Republic of
Germany/Netherlands), Judgment, ICJ Reports 1969 , p. 47 (para. 85) (“delimitation must be the object
of agreement between the States concerned; and… such agreement must be arrived at in accordance with
equitable principles”).
TP3PT ICJ Reports 1969, p. 53 (para. 101(C)(1)).
102 “equitable solution” contained in Ar ticles 74(1) and 83(1) of the 1982
UNCLOS, the Court observed in the Jan Mayen case that:
“[t]hat statement of an ‘equitabl e solution’ as the aim of any
delimitation process reflects the requirements of customary law
as regards the delimitation both of continental shelf and of
144
exclusive economic zone” TPF FPT
and similarly, that,
“[t]he aim in each and every situ ation must be to achieve ‘an
145
equitable result’”. TPF FPT
8.58. Further, Paragraph 4(c) of the Additi onal Agreement refers to the “method of
proportionality”, as applied in State practice and international jurisprudence.
8.59. As the Court affirmed in the North Sea Continental Shelf cases, a final factor to
be taken into account in assessing the equitable nature of a delimitation
“is the element of a reasonable degree of proportionality which a
delimitation effected according to equitable principles ought to
bring about between the extent of the continental shelf
appertaining to the States conc erned and the lengths of their
respective coastlines.” TPF FPT
8.60. The Anglo-French Court of Arbitration in 1977 referred to
“an alleged principle of proportionality by reference to lengths of
coastlines” as “a factor to be taken into account when
appreciating the effects of geographical features on the equitable
or inequitable character of delimitation” and that “it is
disproportion rather than any general principle of proportionality
which is the relevant criterion or factor”. TPF FPT
8.61. In the Gulf of Maine case, the Chamber of the Court observed that
144
TP PT Maritime Delimitation in the Area between Gree nland and Jan Mayen (Denmark v. Norway),
Judgment, ICJ Reports 1993, p. 59 (para. 48).
145
TP PT ICJ Reports 1993, p. 62 (para. 54).
TP6PT ICJ Reports 1969, p. 52 (para. 98).
147
TP PT RIAA vol. XVIII (1977), p.3, at p. 115 (para. 246), p. 57 (para. 99), p. 58 (para.101).
103 “a maritime delimitation can …not be established by a direct
division of the area in dispute proportional to the respective
lengths of the coast belonging to th e parties in the relevant area,
but it is equally certa in that a substantia l disproportion to the
lengths of those coasts that resulted from a delimitation effected
on a different basis would const itute a circumstance calling for
148
an appropriate correction”. TPF FPT
8.62. In the case concerning Maritime Delimitation and Territorial Questions between
Qatar and Bahrain (Qatar v. Bahrain) , the Court also examined the
proportionality of the relevant coasts and, in the specific case, found that
“the disparity in length of the co astal fronts of the Parties cannot
be considered such as to necessitate an adjustment of the
equidistance line”. TPFFPT
8.63. The Court drew the same conclusion in the Cameroon v. Nigeria case, when it
”acknowledge[d] … that a substa ntial difference in the lengths
of the parties’ respective coastlin es may be a factor to be taken
into consideration in order to adjust or shift the provisional
delimitation line. The Court note[ d] that in the present case,
which ever coastline of Nigeria is regarded as relevant, the
relevant coastline of Cameroon, …, is not longer that that of
Nigeria. There [was] therefore no reason to shift the equidistance
150
line in favor of Cameroon on this ground.” TPFFPT
8.64. In the Case concerning the Maritime Boundary between Guinea and Guinea
Bissau, as well, the Arbitral Tribunal took into consideration proportionality, as a
circumstance that needed to be examined in order for an equitable result to be
reached. In this context, the internat ional tribunal underscored the fact that
proportionality is not a mathematics equality, but rather a juridical equality. In its
award, the Tribunal added that
“[…] this circumstance must not be exaggerated. The
delimitation […] cannot be effected by simply dividing the
148
TP PT Delimitation of the Maritime Boundary in the Gulf of Maine Area (Canada/ United States of
America), Judgment, ICJ Reports 1984, p. 323 (para. 185).
TP9PT Maritime Delimitation and Territorial Questions between Qatar and Bahrain (Qatar v.
150rain), Judgment, ICJ Reports 2001, p. 114 (para. 243).
TP PT Land and Maritime Boundary between Cameroon and Nigeria (Cameroon v. Nigeria;
Equatorial Guinea intervening), ICJ Reports 2002, judgment of 10 October 2002, para. 301.
104 maritime zones equally between th e two States in proportion to
the lengths of their coastlines. A delimitation is a legal operation.
In order to effect a de limitation, it is certainly necessary to refer
to circumstances which may have physical characteristics, but
these circumstances must nevertheless be based on
considerations of law. Furthermore, the rule of proportionality is
not a mechanical rule based only on figures reflecting the length
of the coastline. It must be us ed in a reasonable way, with due
account being given to other circumstances in the case […].
More precisely, in the present case , the fact of taking the islands
into account results in the coastlines of the two States being
151
considered by the Tribunal as having the same length.” TF FPT
8.65. Although in situations where the relevant coastlines are disproportionate this has
sometimes been taken as a relevant factor requiring adjustment of a provisional
152
equidistance line, TPFFin the practice of international courts and tribunals
proportionality has principally been used as a means of confirming the
equitableness of a line arrived at by ot her means by comparing the ratio of the
areas provisionally allocated to the ratio of the length of the relevant coastlines.
It is thus used principally as a means to conduct a final check on the equitable
nature of a delimitation after giving effect to the other relevant circumstances.
8.66. In this situation, the test appears to be whether the line adopted by other means is
not “disproportionate”, rather than applying any strict requirement that the areas
allocated to each State stand in the ratio of their respective relevant coast lines.
As the Court of Arbitration said in its award in the maritime delimitation phase
of the Yemen/Eritrea case:
“The principle of proportionalit y… is not an independent mode
or principle of delimitation, but rath er a test of the equitableness
of a delimitation arrived at by so me other means. So, as the
Award stated in the Anglo-French Channel case, ‘it is
disproportion rather than any general principle of proportionality
153
which is the relevant criterion or factor’.” TPF FPT
TP1PT ILR vol. 77, p. 988 (para. 120); also RIAA vol. XIX, (1985), part. IV, p. 193 (para. 120).
TP2eS.e.e Maritime Delimitation in the Area between Greenland and Jan Mayen (Denmark v.
Norway), Judgment, ICJ Reports 1993 , pp. 68-69 (paras. 68-69), p. 77 (para. 87) and pp. 79-81 (paras.
90-93).
TP3PT RIAA, Vol. XXII (2001), Part IV, p. 335, at p. 372 (para. 165).
1058.67. This application of the principle of propor tionality is reflected in the practice of
this Court. In the Tunisia/Libya Continental Shelf case, the Court applied
proportionality to compare the ratio of lengt h of the coast lines of the two States
to the maritime areas allocated as a test of the equitableness of the delimitation
154
line.TPF FPT
8.68. The difference between the two potential uses of the length of coastlines was
underlined in the Libya/Malta Continental Shelf case where the Court warned:
“In connection with lengths of co asts, attention should be drawn
to an important distinction … be tween the relevance of coastal
lengths as a pertinent circumstance for a delimitation, and use of
those lengths in assessing ratios of proportionality. The Court
has already examined the role of proportionality in a delimitation
process, and has also referred to the operation, employed in the
Tunisia/Libya case, of assessing the ra tios between lengths of
coasts and areas of continental shelf attributed on the basis of
those coasts. It has been emphasized that this latter operation is
to be employed solely as a verification of the equitableness of the
result arrived at by other means. It is however one thing to
employ proportionality calculations to check a result; it is
another thing to take note, in the course of the delimitation
process, of the existence of a ve ry marked difference in coastal
lengths, and to attribute the appropriate significance to that
coastal relationship, without seek ing to define it in quantitative
terms which are only suited to the ex post assessment of
relationships of coast to area. The two operations are neither
mutually exclusive, nor so closely identified with each other that
the one would necessarily render the other supererogatory.
Consideration of the comparability or otherwise of the coastal
lengths is a part of the proce ss of determining an equitable
boundary on the basis of an initia l median line; the test of a
reasonable degree of proportionali ty, on the other hand, is one
which can be applied to check the equitableness of any line,
155
whatever the method used to arrive at that line. TPF FPT
8.69. Further, the Court commented on the ro le of proportionality in the following
terms:
154
TP PT Continental Shelf (Tunisia/Libyan Arab Jamahiriya), Judgment, ICJ Reports 1982 , p. 91 (para.
131).
TP5PT Continental Shelf (Libyan Arab Jamahiriya/ Malta), Judgment , ICJ Reports 1985 , p. 49 (para.
66).
106 “to use the ratio of coastal lengths as of itself determinative of
the seaward reach and area of co ntinental shelf proper to each
Party, is to go far beyond the use of proportionality as a test for
equity and as a corrective of the unjustifiable difference of
treatment resulting from some method of drawing the boundary
line. If such a use of proportionality were right, it is difficult
indeed to see what room w ould be left for any other
consideration; for it would be at once the principle of entitlement
to continental shelf rights and also the method of putting that
principle into operation. Its w eakness as a basis of argument,
however, is that the use of proportionality as a method in its own
right is wanting of support in th e practice of States, in the public
expression of their views at (i n particular) the Third United
Nations Conferenc156n the Law of The Sea, or in the
jurisprudence” TPF.PT
8.70. From international case-law, it is acco rdingly possible to extract the following
principles:
(1) proportionality or disproportion is in any case assessed on the basis of
the ratio between the coasts relevant to delimitation, taking into
consideration their general direction and ignoring, for considerations of
equity, their sinuosities;
(2) proportionality has never been used as an independent mode or method
of delimitation, but as a relevant circumstance in delimitation, justifying
adjustment of a provisional equidistan ce line; it may also be used as a
test of the equitableness of the result.
(3) when utilising proportiona lity between the ratio of the lengths of the
relevant coasts compared to the ratio of the area allocated to each party
of the area to be delimited in order to assess the equitableness of a given
line, the question is whether the relationship is one of disproportion
between the two ratios, not whether th ey are in any given arithmetical
proportion to one another.
156
TPPT Continental Shelf (Libyan Arab Jamahiriya/ Malta), Judgment, ICJ Reports 1985, p. 45 (para. 58).
107 (5) The principle of non-contestation of territory
8.71. Paragraph 4 d) of the Additional Agreement refers to:
“d) The principle according to which neither of the Contracting
Parties shall contest the sovere ignty of the other Contracting
Party over any part of its territory adjacent to the zone submitted
to delimitation”.
8.72. This principle does not apply to the maritime delimitation as such; however, it
forms an essential part of the contex t and background against which the other
principles were agreed by the Parties in 1997.
8.73. In particular, its presence demonstrates that the criteria laid down in the
Additional Agreement were specifically tailored to the situation of Serpents’
Island, and that they are not a mere general recital of a declaratory character.
8.74. As already observed, Romania does not cont est that Serpents’ Island belongs to
Ukraine, despite the circumstances in which that came to be so. Nor does
Romania contest the sovereignty of Ukrain e over any other parts of its territory,
including its territorial sea.
(6) The principle of taking into account special circumstances
8.75. Paragraph 4 e) of the Additional Agreement refers to:
“e) The principle of taking into consideration the special
circumstances of the zone submitted to delimitation.”
8.76. As already indicated, the recent practi ce of the Court shows that the normal
approach to any delimitation is to take an equidistance or median line as the
starting point and then to adjust it so as to take account of relevant or special
circumstances, whether the delimitation is conducted under general international
law, the 1958 Geneva Continental Shelf Convention, or under the 1982
UNCLOS. A similar approach is recognised through the combination Paragraphs
108 4 b) (equidistance/median line) and 4 e) (special circumstances) of the Additional
Agreement.
8.77. As emphasised by the Court in the Jan Mayen case, the difference between the
“equitable principles/relevant circ umstances” method under customary
international law (as reflected in Articles 74 and 83 UNCLOS), and the situation
under the 1958 Convention, based on the “e quidistance/special circumstances”
approach is slight or non-existent:
“54. … The aim in each and every situation must be to achieve
‘an equitable result’. From this standpoint, the 1958 Convention
requires the investigation of a ny ‘special circumstances’; the
customary law based upon equitable principles on the other hand
requires the investigation of ‘relevant circumstances’.
55. The concept of ‘special circ umstances’ was discussed at
length at the First United Nations Conference on the Law of the
Sea, held in 1958. It was included both in the Geneva
Convention of 29 April 1958 on the Territorial Sea and the
Contiguous Zone (Art. 12) and in the Geneva Convention of 29
April 1958 on the Continental Shelf (Art. 6, paras. 1 and 2). It
was and remains linked to th e equidistance method there
contemplated, so much so ind eed that in 19 77 the Court of
Arbitration in the case concerning the delimitation of the
continental shelf (United Kingdom/F rance) was able to refer to
the existence of a rule combining ‘equidistance-special
circumstances’ (see paragraph 46 above ). It is thus apparent that
special circumstances are those circumstances which might
modify the result produced by an unqualified application of the
equidistance principle. General international law, as it has
developed through the case-law of the Court and arbitral
jurisprudence, and through the work of the Third United Nations
Conference on the Law of the Sea, has employed the concept of
‘relevant circumstances’. This concept can be described as a fact
necessary to be taken into account in the delimitation process.
56. Although it is a matter of categories which are different
in origin and in name, there is inevitably a tendency towards
assimilation between the special circumstances of Article 6 of
the 1958 Convention and the relevant circumstances under
customary law, and this if only because they both are intended to
enable the achievement of an e quitable result. This must be
especially true in the case of oppos ite coasts where, as has been
seen, the tendency of customary la w, like the terms of Article 6,
has been to postulate the median line as leading prima facie to an
109 equitable result. It cannot be surprising if an equidistance-special
circumstances rule produces much the same result as an
equitable principles-relevant circ umstances rule in the case of
opposite coasts, whether in th e case of a delimitation of
continental shelf, of fishery z one, or of an all-purpose single
boundary. There is a further finding of the Anglo-French Court
of Arbitration to this effect when, after referring to the rule in
Article 6, and to the rule of customary law based upon equitable
principles and ‘relevant’ circum stances, it said that the double
basis on which the parties had put their case,
‘confirms the Court’s conclusi on that the different ways
in which the requirements of “equitable principles” or the
effects of “special circum stances” are put reflect
differences of appro157 and terminology rather than of
substance’…” TPFFPT
(a) The provisional equidistance/median line and special circumstances
8.78. The starting element is accordingly the equidistance or median line drawn from
the basepoints which are relevant fo r the delimitation of the zone(s) in
question. TPFFPAs observed by the Court in the Cameroon/Nigeria case:
“The Court has on various occasions made it clear what the
applicable criteria, principles and rules of delimitation are when
a line covering several zones of co incident jurisdictions is to be
determined. They are expressed in the so-called equitable
principles/relevant circumstances method. This method, which
is very similar to the equidistan ce/special circumstances method
applicable in delimitation of the territorial sea, involves first
drawing an equidistance line, then considering whether there are
factors calling for the adjustment or shifting of that line in order
to achieve an equitable result.” TPF FPT
TP7PT Maritime Delimitation in the Area between Gr eenland and Jan Mayen (Denmark v. Norway) ,
Judgment, ICJ Reports 1993 , pp. 62-63 (paras. 54-56) citing the Anglo-French arbitration, RIAA, Vol.
XVIII, p. XX, at p. 75, para. 148; (1977) I.L.R., vol. 54, p. 84; International Legal Materials, vol. 18, p.
435.
TP8PT Thus where a small island, islet, rock or ot her feature cannot constitute a basepoint for the
delimitation or does not generate the maritime z one in question, it is ignored in constructing the
equidistance line.
TP9PT Land and Maritime Boundary between Cameroon and Nigeria (Cameroon v. Nigeria;
Equatorial Guinea intervening), ICJ Reports 2002, judgment of 10 October 2002, para. 288.
1108.79. The Court has previously adopted this approach in a number of cases; thus in the
Jan Mayen case, a case of opposite coasts, ha ving concluded that “both for the
continental shelf and for the fishery zones in this case, it is proper to begin the
160
process of delimitation by a median line provisionally drawn”, TPFFPthe Court went
on to consider the factors which might require an adjustment to that provisional
161
line. TPF FPT
8.80. Similarly, in the Qatar/Bahrain case, having referred to the approach adopted in
the Jan Mayen case, the Court followed the same course, ruling that:
“For the delimitation of the maritime zones beyond the 12-mile
zone it will first provisionally draw an equidistance line and then
consider whether there are circumstances which must lead to an
162
adjustment of that line.” TPF FPT
8.81. However, as emphasised by the Court in the Jan Mayen case, in the context of
delimitations between opposite States, equidistance has a particular significance.
In that case, the 1958 Continental Shelf Convention was applicable; neither party
had ratified 1982 UNCLOS, a lthough both had signed it, and in any case it had
not at that point acquired the requisite number of ratifications in order to enter
into force. However, the Court, having referred to the 1977 decision of the
Anglo-French Court of Arbitration, observed that:
“If the equidistance-special ci rcumstances rule of the 1958
Convention is, in the light of th is 1977 Decision, to be regarded
as expressing a general norm ba sed on equitable principles, it
must be difficult to find any material difference--at any rate in
regard to delimitation between opposite coasts-- between the
effect of Article 6 and the effect of the customary rule which also
163
requires a delimitation based on equitable principles.” TPF FPT
160
TP PT Maritime Delimitation in the Area between Gree nland and Jan Mayen (Denmark v. Norway),
Judgment, ICJ Reports 1993 , p. 62 (para. 53). For the Court’s discussion of the appropriateness of
starting from a provisional median line, see ICJ Reports 1993, pp. 59-62, (paras. 49-53), referring to the
approach adopted by the Court in the Libya/Malta (Continental Shelf (Libyan Arab Jamahiriya/Malta),
ICJ Reports 1984, p. 13) and Gulf of Maine (Delimitation of the Maritime Boundary in the Gulf of Maine
Area, ICJ Reports 1984, p. 246) cases.
161
TP PT For the Court’s discussion, see Maritime Delimitation in the Area between Greenland and Jan
Mayen (Denmark v. Norway), ICJ Reports 1993, pp. 64-77 (paras. 59-86).
162
TP PT Maritime Delimitation and Territorial Questions between Qatar and Bahrain (Qatar v.
Bahrain), Judgment, ICJ Reports 2001, p. 111 (para. 230).
TP3PT ICJ Reports 1993, p. 58 (para. 46)
111 The Court went on to observe, again re ferring to the deci sion of the Anglo-
French Court of Arbitration, that:
“Although it is a matter of categories which are different in
origin and in name, there is inevitably a tendency towards
assimilation between the special circumstances of Article 6 of
the 1958 Convention and the relevant circumstances under
customary law, and this is only because they both are intended to
enable the achievement of an e quitable result. This must be
especially true in the case of oppos ite coasts where, as has been
seen, the tendency of customary la w, like the terms of Article 6,
has been to postulate the median line as leading prima facie to an
164
equitable result.” TPFFPT
Finally, the Court observed that:
“Prima facie, a median line delimitation between opposite coasts
results in general [is] an equitable solution, particularly if the
coasts in question are nearly parallel. When, as in the present
case, delimitation is required between opposite coasts which are
insufficiently far apart for both to enjoy the full 200-mile
extension of continental shelf and other rights over maritime
spaces recognized by international law, the median line will be
equidistant also from the two 200-mile limits, and may prima
facie be regarded as effecting an equitable division of the
overlapping area.” TPF5FPT
8.82. This approach was followed by the Eritrea-Yemen Arbitral Tribunal in its Award
in the Second Phase of the arbitration, were the Tribunal took “as its fundamental
166
point of departure, that, as between opposite coasts, a median line obtains”, TPF FPT
while noting the difference between the situ ation in confined waters and that of
167
the “great oceans”. TPF FIn that case, UNCLOS was not directly applicable,
although the parties in the Arbitration Agreement had stipulated that the Tribunal
was to apply UNCLOS “and any other pertinent factor”.
164
TP PT ICJ Reports 1993, p. 62 (para. 56)
TP5PT ICJ Reports 1993, p. 66 (para. 64)
TP6PEritrea-Yemen, Second Stage: Maritime Delimitation , Award of 17 December 1999,
International Legal Materials, vol. 40, p. 998 (para. 83). See also RIAA, Vol. XXII (2001), Part IV, p. 354
(para. 83).
TP7PT International Legal Materials, vol. 40, p. 446 (para. 85). RIAA, Vol. XXII (2001), Part IV, p. 355
(para. 85).
1128.83. Given the equivalence of the equitabl e principles-relevant circumstances
approach under customary international law (as embodied in UNCLOS) and the
equidistance-special circumstances approach (as applicable under the Additional
Agreement), it does not seem to matter which approach the Court actually
applies.
8.84. In the end, the fundamental principle is that the delimitation should produce an
equitable result, and that an equitable result is produced by an
equidistance/median line, adjusted for relevant/special circumstances.
8.85. Of the factors which have been considered to be relevant, the primary one is the
geophysical situation of the area to be delimited, i.e. its configuration. This
includes the projection of the relevant co asts, and the connected principle that,
where possible, zones should be delimited so as to avoid any cut-off, as well as
the eventual disproportion between the relevant coastal lengths or the presence of
islands, islets or rocks in the delimitation area.
(b) Islands as a special circumstance
8.86. The role of islands as a special circumstance in maritime delimitation can be seen
as merely part of the wider requireme nt to take account of the geographical
context in order to reach an equitable solution. Howeve r, islands have a special
significance in maritime delimitation.
8.87. A review of delimitation awards and of State practice reveals that, quite
independently of whether they count as “rocks” within the meaning of Article
121(3) of the 1982 UNCLOS, and therefor e have no continental shelf or
exclusive economic zone, small islands ha ve almost always been given very
reduced or no effect in the delimitati on of the continental shelf, exclusive
economic zone or other maritime zones due to the inequitable effect they would
produce. Often they have been limited only to a maximum 12 nm territorial sea
enclave. In a number of cases they have been ignored altogether.
113(i) Judicial and arbitral decisions
8.88. On numerous occasions, in ternational courts and tri bunals have stated that
limited or no effect should be given to islands that have th e potential to distort
the delimitation line and thus to preclude an equitable overall result.
8.89. In the North Sea Continental Shelf case, in referring to delimitation between
States having opposite coasts, the Court observed that
“The continental shelf area off, and dividing, opposite States, can
be claimed by each of them to be a natural prolongation of its
territory. These prolongations meet and overlap, and can
therefore only be delimited by me ans of a median line; and,
ignoring the presence of isle ts, rocks and minor coastal
projections, the disproportionally distorting effect of which can
be eliminated by other means, such a line must effect an equal
division of the particular area involved.” TPF FPT
The Court accordingly made clear even prior to the inclusion of Article 121(3) in
the 1982 UNCLOS, that, in performing the delimitation between opposite States,
small insular formations (“islets” and “rocks”), as well as “minor coastal
projections” were not to be taken in to account if they would have a
disproportionate effect, and accordingly would preclude an equitable solution.
8.90. In the case concerning Delimitation of the Continental Shelf between the United
Kingdom and France, the Tribunal found that the Channel Islands could not
generate full maritime zones (as advocated by the United Kingdom), but that
their position meant that they were to be treated as a “special circumstance” for
the purposes of the delimitation. TPFFPThe Islands were not given any effect in
170
drawing the median line as between th e French and English mainland coasts, TPF FPT
and were given only 12 nautical mile encl aves of continental shelf to their west
and north, separated from the remainder of the continental shelf awarded to the
TP8PT North Sea Continental Shelf (Federal Republic of Germany/Denmark; Federal Republic of
Germany/Netherlands), Judgment, ICJ Reports 1969, p. 36 (para. 57).
TP9PT Court of Arbitration, Award of 30 June 1977, RIAA, Vol. XVIII (1977), p. 93 (para. 196);
(1977) I.L.R., vol. 54, p. 101; International Legal Materials, vol. 18, pp. 443-444.
170
TP PT RIAA, Vol. XVIII, (1977), p. 94-95 (para. 201); (1977) I.L.R., vol. 54, p. 102; International
Legal Materials, vol. 18, p. 444.
114 171
United Kingdom by a region of French continental shelf. TPF FPThis solution was
reached despite the fact that the Channel Islands possess
“a considerable population and a substantial ag ricultural and
commercial economy, they are clea rly territorial and political
units which have their own separa te existence, and which are of
a certain importance in their own right separately from the
United Kingdom.” TPF FPT
8.91. In the same case, the Scilly Islands, which lie roughly 21 nm off the British
173
mainland and have a significant population, TPF Fwere also treated as constituting a
“special circumstance”, on the basis that if given full effect they would have
deflected the equidistance line consider ably further south in an inequitable
manner and producing disproportionate effects. TPF FAccordingly, they were given
175
only half-effect in drawing the median equidistance line. TPF FPT
8.92. In the arbitral decision in the case concerning the Boundary Dispute between
Dubai and Sharjah , the Tribunal considered it equi table to disregard, for the
purposes of delimitation of the continenta l shelf, the island of Abu Musa (which
is a large maritime feature, having a significant population and economic
importance). The Tribunal indicated that
“[t]he entitlement of an island to a continental shelf is an
inherent right, deriving from the physical fact of the existence of
the shelf as a prolongation of the landmass…
… the island of Abu Musa lies on a common shelf which is
geologically as much a prolongatio n of the land-mass of Dubai
as that of Sharjah.
The question, however, necessarily arises as to whether an
inherent entitlement of the island of Abu Musa to a share of this
TP1PT RIAA, Vol. XVIII, (1977), p. 95 (para. 202); (1977) I.L.R., vol. 54, pp. 102-103; International
Legal Materials, vol. 18, pp. 444-445
TP2PT RIAA, Vol. XVIII, (1977), p. 88 (para. 184); (1977) I.L.R., vol. 54, p. 96; International Legal
Materials, vol. 18, p. 441.
TP3PT RIAA, Vol. XVIII, (1977), p. 107 (para. 227); (1977) I.L.R., vol. 54, pp. 114-115; International
174al Materials, vol. 18, pp. 450-451.
TP PT RIAA, Vol. XVIII, (1977), p. 113-115 (paras. 243-245); (1977) I.L.R., vol. 54, pp. 121-122;
International Legal Materials, vol. 18, p. 454.
175
TP PT RIAA, Vol. XVIII, (1977), p. 117 (para. 251); (1977) I.L.R., vol. 54, p. 124; International Legal
Materials, vol. 18, p. 455.
115 common shelf may be displaced by a consideration of
exceptional geographical circumstances…
Certain islands are clearly capable of giving rise to ‘special
circumstances’ and thus to the invocation of equitable
considerations where their exis tence would otherwise produce a
distortion of the equidistance line or an exaggerated effect which
would be inequitable. It ma y thus be necessary, in the
delimitation of a boundary, to abate the effect of an island which
forms an incidental special feature.
…
[The Court] has come to the conc lusion […] that to allow to the
island of Abu Musa any entitlement to an area of the continental
shelf of the Gulf beyond the extent of its belt of territorial sea
would indeed produce a distorting effect upon neighboring shelf
areas. The application of equitabl e principles here, so as to
achieve a limitation that is a function or reflection of the
geographical and other relevant ci rcumstances of the area, must
lead to no effect being accorded to the islands of Abu Musa for
the purpose of plotting median or equidistance shelf boundary
between it and the neighboring shelf areas.
...
To give no effect to the continental shelf entitlement to the island
of Abu Musa would preserve th e equities of the geographical
situation and would be consistent for example, with comparable
regional practice as applied to the islands of Al-‘Arabiyah and
Farsi in the Saudi Arabian–Ira nian Agreement of January 1969,
and Dayinah in the Abu Dahbi-Qatar Agreement of March 1969,
where the continental shelf rights of islands were limited as to
coincide with their respective territorial waters, but not used as
basepoints for the purpose of constructing median or
equidistance boundaries in respec t of the continental shelves
between opposite or adjacent states.” TPFFPT
8.93. In the Tunisia/Libya Continental Shelf case, the International Court of Justice
177
gave only half-effect to the Kerkennah Islands, TPF Fdespite their considerable size
(180 km P )TPF, while the presence of the large island of Jerba, located close to the
176
177PT Dubai-Sharjah Border Arbitration, (1981) I.L.R., vol. 91, pp 675-677.
TP PT Continental Shelf (Tunisia/Libyan Arab Jamahiriya), ICJ Reports 1982 , pp. 88-89 (paras. 128-
129).
TP8PT Ibid., p. 89 (para.128).
116 mainland, was ignored even as a special circumstance given the other relevant
179
circumstances present. TPF FPT
8.94. In the Gulf of Maine case, the Chamber, having quoted the passage from the
North Sea Continental Shelf cases cited above at para. 8.89, pointed out
“the potential disadvantages inherent in any method which takes
tiny islands, uninhabited rocks or low-tide elevations, sometimes
lying at a considerable distance fr om terra firma, as basepoints
for the drawing of a line intended to effect an equal division of a
given area. If any of these ge ographical features posses some
degree of importance, there is nothing to prevent their
subsequently being whatever limited corrective effect may
equitably be assigned them, but th at is an altogether different
operation from making a series of such minor features the very
basis for the determination of the dividing line”. TPF FPT
The Chamber considered appropriate that only half effect should be given to Seal
Island, although it is about 3 miles long, between 1-1½ miles wide and, as the
Chamber underlined, is inhabited throughout the year.
8.95. In the St Pierre et Miquelon case, the Tribunal awarded the French islands (of
substantial size and with a long-sta nding resident population) only a limited
extension of the enclave beyond the territorial sea, and then only in the form of a
narrow corridor pointing in a direction which did not cut off the projection of any
relevant Canadian (i.e. Newfoundland) coast. TPFFPT
8.96. In the Jan Mayen case, Denmark argued on a number of bases (including that it
could not sustain human habitation or an economic life of its own) that Jan
Mayen should be given no effect as agai nst Greenland’s continental shelf in the
182
delimitation. TPF FPWhile not accepting the contention based on Jan Mayen’s
TP9PT ICJ Reports 1982, p. 64 (para. 79) and p. 85 (para. 120).
180
TP PT Delimitation of the Maritime Boundary in the Gulf of Maine Area , ICJ Reports 1984, pp. 329-
330 (para. 201)
181
TPAPCrbitrrattion, Delimitation of Maritime Areas between Canada and France (St. Pierre et
Miquelon), Award of 10 June 1992, International Legal Materials, vol. 31, p. 1145.
TP2PT Maritime Delimitation in the Area between Gree nland and Jan Mayen (Denmark v. Norway),
Judgment, ICJ Reports 1993, p. 64-65 (para. 60) for the Court’s summary of these arguments.
117 inability to sustain human habitation or an economic life of its own, TPF Fthe Court
nevertheless found it necessary to adjust the provisional median line, moving it
closer to the coast of Jan Mayen on the basis of the disproportionality between
the respective lengths of the coast lines of Jan Mayen and Greenland. TPF FPT
8.97. In the second phase of the Eritrea/Yemen arbitration, relating to the maritime
boundary, the Arbitral Tribunal observed, in its discussion of certain small
uninhabitable islands belonging to Yemen in the Red Sea (the Jabal al-Tayr and
the Zubayr group) :
“…this requirement of an equita ble result directly raises the
question of the effect to be allowed to mid-sea islands, which, by
virtue of their mid-sea position and if allowed full effect, can
obviously produce a disproportiona te effect – or indeed a
reasonable effect – all depending on their size, importance and
185
like considerations in the general geographical context…” TPF FPT
The Tribunal continued:
“In its assessment of the equities of the ‘effect’ to be given to
these northern islands and isle ts, the Tribunal decided not to
accept the Yemen plea that they allo wed a full, or at least some,
effect on the median line. This decision was confirmed by the
result that, in any event, thes e mid-sea islands would enjoy an
entire territorial sea of the normal 12 miles – even on their
186
western side…” TPF FPT
The Tribunal accordingly decided to draw a median equidistance line in the
northern sector on the following basis:
- on the one hand utilizing baselines on the Yemeni coast (including the
fringing islands, which the Tribunal found to be an integral part of the
187
Yemeni coast), TPF Fignoring Jabal al-Tayr a nd the Zubayr group whose
188
effect, it was found, would have been disproportionate; TPF FPT
183
TP PT ICJ Reports 1993, pp. 73-74 (para. 80).
TP4PT ICJ Reports 1993, p. 69 (para. 69); see also at p. 77 (para. 87) and pp. 79-81 (paras. 90-93).
185
TP PTEritrea-Yemen, Second Stage: Maritime Delimitation , Award of 17 December 1999,
International Legal Materials, vol. 40, p. 1003 (para. 117).
186
TP PT International Legal Materials, vol. 40, p. 1004 (para. 119).
TP7PT International Legal Materials, vol. 40, p. 1008 (paras. 149-151).
188
TP PT International Legal Materials, vol. 40, p. 1008 (paras. 147-148).
118 - on the other hand, baselines drawn on the outer islands in the Eritrean
Dahlak group (ignoring the Negileh Rock), and the Eritrean mainland
coast. TPF FPT
The equidistance line drawn on this basis continued southwards, until the
presence of the Yemeni Jabal Zuqar and Hanish group and their territorial seas
compelled a diversion westwards. TPFFPT
8.98. In Qatar/Bahrain, the Court disregarded the mariti me feature of Qit’at Jaradah
when constructing the delimitation line between the territorial seas of the two
countries. The Court observed that
“…Qit’at Jaradah is a very small island, uninhabited and without
any vegetation. This tiny island, which – as the Court has
determined … – comes under Bahrai ni sovereignty, is situated
about midway between the main island of Bahrain and the Qatar
peninsula. Consequently, if its low-water line were to be used for
determining a basepoint in the c onstruction of the equidistance
line, and this line taken as the delimitation line, a
disproportionate effect would be given to an insignificant
maritime feature…
In similar situations the Court has sometimes been led to
eliminate the disproportionate effect of small islands… The
Court thus finds that there is a special circumstance in this case
warranting the choice of a delimitation line passing immediately
to the east of Qit'at Jaradah.” TPFFPT
8.99. The Court also chose to ignore the isle t of Fasht al Jarim when tracing the
delimitation line between th e continental shelves and exclusive economic zones
of Qatar and Bahrain. The Court found that
“… [t]he only noticeable element is Fasht al Jarim as a remote
projection of Bahrain’s coastline in the Gulf area, which, if given
full effect, would ‘distort the boundary and have disproportionate
189
190PT International Legal Materials, vol. 40, pp. 1007-1008, (paras 139-146)
TP PT International Legal Materials, vol. 40, p. 1010 (para. 160-162)
TP1PT Maritime Delimitation and Territorial Questi ons Between Qatar and Bahrain (Qatar v.
Bahrain), Judgment, ICJ Reports 2001 , pp. 104 and 109 (para. 219), referring to the passages from the
North Sea Continental Shelf case and the Libya/Malta Continental Shelf case quote above at paras. 8.89
and 8.40 respectively.
119 effects’ (Continental Shelf Ca se (France/United Kingdom)
United Nations, Reports of Intern ational Arbitral Awards, Vol
XVIII, p 114, paragraph 244)’”.
In the view of the Court, such a distortion, due to a maritime
feature located well out to sea and of which at most a minute part
is above water at high tide, would not lead to an equitable
solution which would be in accord with all other relevant factors
referred to above. In the circumstances of the case,
considerations of equity require that Fasht al Jarim should have
no effect in determining the boundary line in the northern sector.
The Court accordingly decides that the single maritime boundary
in this sector shall be formed in the first place by a line which,
from a point situated to the north-west of Fasht ad Dibal, shall
meet the equidistance line as adjusted to take account of the
192
absence of effect given to Fasht al Jarim.” TPFFPT
8.100. In the Nova Scotia/Newfoundland arbitration, the domestic Canadian Tribunal
applying international law in order to delimit the maritime boundary between
two of the constituent provinces of Cana da, carefully analysed the effect that
should have been given to Sable Isla nd, a sand island of substantial size,
inhabited only by federal officials engaged as lighthouse keepers or as scientists
or engaged in conservation and conserva tors. The Tribunal began by noting
that:
“Sable Island is an isolate d, sandy, crescent-shaped island
oriented in an east-west direc tion, 22 nm long and less than one
nautical mile wide, situated 120 nm south of Scatarie Island and
about 88 nm from the mainland of Nova Scotia. It has an area of
193
33 square kilometers…” TPFFPT
The Tribunal then concluded that alt hough Sable Island is c onsiderably more
substantial than Fasht al Jarim (at issue in the Qatar/Bahrain case), nevertheless
“in the context of the present delimitation, it is clearly a ‘speci al’ or ‘relevant’
circumstance which needs to be taken into account”. TPFFPT
192
TP PT ICJ Reports 2001, pp. 114-115 (paras. 247-249).
TP3PT Newfoundland and Labrador v. Nova Scotia , Award of the Tribunal in the Second Phase,
194awa, 26 March 2002 (available at http://www.boundary-dispute.ca ), para. 4.32
TP PT Ibid., para. 4.36
1208.101. Later in the Award, the Tribunal addressed the question of the effect to be given
to Sable Island “[h]aving re gard to its remote location and the very substantial
disproportionate effect this small, unpopulated island would have on the
delimitation if it were given full effect”. TPF FPThe Tribunal ini tially considered
whether an equitable solu tion would be achieved by giving Sable Island only
196
half effect in adjusting the provisional equidistance line. TPF FPT
8.102. However, the Tribunal eventually took the view that, although giving only half-
effect to Sable Island s ubstantially reduced the cut- off effect on the southwest
coast of Newfoundland, the effect given to Sable Island should be still further
reduced. The Tribunal continued:
“Moreover, the Tribunal is of the view that a further adjustment
of the equidistance line (beyond gi ving only half effect to Sable
Island) would accommodate in a reasonable way the disparity in
the lengths of the Parties’ coasts (as determined by the Tribunal)
in both the inner and outer ar eas. Accordingly, the Tribunal
further adjusts the equidistance line by giving no effect whatever
197
to Sable Island.” TPF F(emphasis added).
8.103. Finally, it may be noted that in the Libya/Malta case, the Court, in addition to
198
ignoring the island of Filfla for the purposes of drawing baselines, TPF FPfurther did
not give full effect to Malta, an inde pendent State, vis-à- vis Libya, a solution
199
stemming from the striking difference in the lengths of their relevant shores. TPF FPT
The Court had earlier suggested that
“it might well be that the sea bound aries in this region would be
different if the islands of Malta did not constitute an independent
State, but formed a part of the territory of one of the surrounding
countries…” TPF FPT
195
TP PT Ibid., para. 5.13
TP6PT Ibid.
197
TP PT Ibid, para. 5.15
TP8PT Continental Shelf (Libyan Arab Jamahiriya/Malta) , Judgment, ICJ Reports 1985 , p. 20 (para.
15), quoted above in para. 8.40.
199
200PT ICJ Reports 1985, pp. 51-52 (paras. 71-73).
TP PT ICJ Reports 1985, p. 42 (para. 53).
121 thereby seeming to imply that if Malta had been a dependent territory, its
201
entitlement to maritime areas would have been further reduced. TPF FPT
(ii) Sta ptreactice
8.104. In addition to the decisions of courts a nd tribunals, there is a clear pattern in
international practice to either disregard sm all or isolated islands entirely, or to
award only limited effect to certain island s because of their lack of importance
and because of their potential to distort an otherwise equitable line.
8.105. When a method other than equidistance is used (for example, the parallel of
latitude, or the perpendicular to the gene ral direction of the coast) small islands
202
are usually totally ignored TPF PT When the equidistance method is used, the
predominant tendency is to give no or litt le effect to such maritime formation.
Various examples can be invoked in this respect.
8.106. In the Continental Shelf Agreement be tween Iran and Qatar of 20 September
203
1969, various small islands were ignored when drawing the median line. TPF FPT
8.107. In the Agreement between the Government of the Republic of Indonesia and the
Government of Malaysia Relating to the Delimitation of the Continental shelf
204
between the Two Countries of 1969, TPF Fthe boundary between the adjacent coast
of Borneo/Kalimantan (Indonesia) and Sara wak (Malaysia) gives less than full
effect to various Indonesian islands.
201
Tdisheufs.sion, ICJ Reports 1985, pp. 51-52 (para. 72), discussing the northern-most course
the boundary could possibly take on the hypothetical basis of the situation if Malta belonged to Italy.
202
TP PT See International Maritime Boundaries, vol I, edited by Jonathan I. Charney and Lewis M.
Alexander, Martinus Nijhoff Publishers, 1996, p. 134
203
TP PT Iran/Qatar Agreement concerning the Boundary Line dividing the Continental Shelf between
Iran and Qatar, Doha, 20 September 1969; 787 United Nations Treaty Series 172. See also International
Maritime Boundaries, vol II, edited by Jonathan I. Charney and Lewis M. Alexander, Martinus Nijhoff
Publishers, 1996, p. 1513.
TP4PT Kuala Lumpur, 27 October 1969; see US Department of State, “Indonesia-Malaysia Continental
Shelf Boundary”, Limits in th e Seas, No. 1 (1970). See also International Maritime Boundaries, vol I,
edited by Jonathan I. Charney and Lewis M. Alexander, Martinus Nijhoff Publishers, 1996, p. 1021.
1228.108. In the 1974 agreement between India and Sri Lanka, the island of Kachchativu
appears to not have affected the delimitation line. TPF FPT
8.109. In the Agreement between Greece and Italy delimiting their respective
continental shelf areas of 1977, various e ffects were given to Greek islands in
the Channel of Otranto and the Strofades group, according to their size and their
206
population. TPF FPT
8.110. In the Agreement between Italy and Y ugoslavia concerning the Delimitation of
207
the Continental Shelf between the Two Countries of 1968 TPF PTthe Yugoslav
islands of Jabuka, Pelagruz and Kajola (Galijula) were given zero effect, as was
the small Italian island of Pianosa. The islands of Pelagruz and Kajola, lying
almost exactly on the median line so drawn were however given 12 nautical
mile enclaves.
8.111. The Agreement between the Government of the Italian Republic and the
Government of the Tunisian Republic Relating to the Delimitation of the
Continental Shelf between the Two Countries of 1971, TPF Fdisregarded the Italian
islands Pantelleria, Linosa, Lampedus a, and Lampione for the purposes of
drawing an equidistance median line. 12 nautical mile territorial sea/contiguous
zones were then given to each of the It alian islands, and an further 1 nautical
mile zone of continental shelf outside t hose 12 nautical mile arcs were given to
Pantelleria, Lionosa and Lampedusa.
205
TP PT Sri Lanka/India Agreement on the maritime bounda ry between the two countries in the Gulf of
Mannar and the Bay of Bengal and related matters, New Delhi, 23 March 1976, 1049 United Nations
Treaty Series 43. See also International Maritime Boundaries, vol II, edited by Jonathan I. Charney and
Lewis M. Alexander, Martinus Nijhoff Publishers, 1996, p. 1412.
TP6PT Agreement between the Hellenic Republic and the Italian Republic on the delimitation of the
respective continental shelf areas of the two States, Athens, 24 May 1977, 1275 United Nations Treaty
Series 427. See also International Maritime Boundaries, vol II, edited by Jonathan I. Charney and Lewis
M. Alexander, Martinus Nijhoff Publishers, 1996, p. 1594.
207
TP PT Rome, 8 January 1968; see US Department of State, “Italy – Yugoslavia; Continental Shelf
Boundary”, Limits in the Seas, No. 9 (1970). See also International Maritime Boundaries, vol II, edited
by Jonathan I. Charney and Lewis M. Alexander, Martinus Nijhoff Publishers, 1996, p. 1630.
TP8PT Tunis, 20 August 1971; 1129 United Nations Treaty Series 255; see also US Department of
State, “Italy – Tunisia; Contin ental Shelf Boundary”, Limits in the Seas, No. 89 (1980). See also
International Maritime Boundaries, vol II, edited by Jonathan I. Charney and Lewis M. Alexander,
Martinus Nijhoff Publishers, 1996, p.1616-1617.
1238.112. Less than full effect was also given to the Swedish islands of Götland and
Gotska Sandön, which have roughly 55 000 inhabitants, in the 1988 Agreement
between Sweden and the USSR in relation to the continental shelf and exclusive
209
economic zone/fishing boundary between the two States. TPF FPT
8.113. Half effect was given to islands in the case of the Agreement concerning the
sovereignty over the Islands of Al-‘Arab iyah and Farsi and the delimitation of
the boundary line separating the submar ine areas between the Kingdom of
210
Saudi Arabia and Iran (Kharg Island). TPFFPT
8.114. The Agreement between Qatar and Abu Dhabi of 1969 is an example of an
agreement where the equidistant line between the two ad jacent coasts is
diverted around a 3-mile arc surroundi ng the island of Daiyina, which was
otherwise given no effect at all. TPF FPT
8.115. The Offshore Boundary Agreement between Iran and Dubai of 1974 provided
for only a slight deviation of the boundary otherwise drawn on the basis of a 12
212
nautical mile arc around the Iranian island of Sirri. TPF FPT
8.116. The Agreement between Finland and Swed en on delimitation in the Åland Sea
and northern Baltic Sea of 1994 TPF Fignores as basepoint s the Bogskär Islands,
which consists of two uninhabited rocks with a total area of 4-5 km².
209
TP PT Agreement between the Government of the Kingdom of Sweden and the Government of the
Union of Soviet Socialist Republics on the Delimitation of the Continental Shelf and of the Swedish
Fishing Zone and the Soviet Economic Zone in the Baltic Sea, Moscow, 18 April 1988; 1557 United
Nations Treaty Series 283. See also International Maritime Boundaries, vol II, edited by Jonathan I.
Charney and Lewis M. Alexander, Martinus Nijhoff Publishers, 1996, p. 2061-2062.
210
TP PT Tehran, 24 October 1968, 696 United Nations Treaty Series 212. See also International
Maritime Boundaries, vol II, edited by Jonathan I. Charney and Lewis M. Alexander, Martinus Nijhoff
Publishers, 1996, p. 1521.
211
TP PT Qatar/Abu Dhabi (United Arab Emirates), Agreement on settlement of maritime boundary lines
and sovereign rights over islands, 20 March 1969: see US Department of State, “Qatar – United Arab
Emirates (Abu Dhabi); Continental Shelf Boundary” , Limits in the Seas, No . 18 (1970). See also
International Maritime Boundaries, vol II, edited by Jonathan I. Charney and Lewis M. Alexander,
212tinus Nijhoff Publishers, 1996, p. 1543.
TP PT Tehran, 31 August 1974; see US Department of State, “Iran – United Arab Emirates (Dubai);
Continental Shelf Boundary”, Limits in the Seas, No. 63 (1975). See also International Maritime
Boundaries, vol II, edited by Jonathan I. Charney and Lewis M. Alexander, Martinus Nijhoff Publishers,
1996, p. 1535.
1248.117. In the Agreement between the Domi nican Republic and the United Kingdom
concerning the delimitation of the ma ritime boundary between the Dominican
Republic and the Turks and Caicos Islands, TPF Fthe boundary agreed runs to the
north of the equidistant lin e for its whole length, by up to as much as 7 miles,
favouring thus the Dominican Republic.
8.118. The Agreement between the People’s Republic of China and the Socialist
Republic of Viet Nam on the Delimitation of the Territorial Sea, the Exclusive
Economic Zone and Continental Shelf in Beibu Bay/Gulf of Tonkin of 25
December 2000 gives only limited (25 per cent) effect to the Vietnamese island
of Bach Long Vi, which is located in th e centre of the Gulf of Tonkin, slightly
closer to Viet Nam, so that in addition to territorial waters of 12 nm it also has a
3 nautical mile zone of exclusive economic zone and continental shelf.
Similarly, the small island of Con Co wh ich lies close to the shore of Viet Nam
was given only 50 per cent effect in drawing the boundary between the two
215
States at the closing line of the Gulf of Tonkin TPF FPT
8.119. The island of Bach Long Vi faces the Chinese island of Hainan, has a total area
of 2.5 km², is permanently inhabited, and has a flourishing economic life of its
own. It is situated in the centre of th e Tonkin Gulf (about 110 km off the coast
of Viet Nam and some 130 km off the coast of the Chinese island of Hainan). TPF FPT
TP3PT Agreement between the Republic of Finland and the Kingdom of Sweden on the delimitation of
the boundary between the continental shelf and fishery zone of Finland and the economic zone of
Sweden in the Åland Sea and the Northern Baltic Sea, Stockholm, 2 June 1994; 1887 United Nations
Treaty Series 238. See also International Maritime Boundaries, vol III , edited by Jonathan I. Charney
214 Lewis M. Alexander, Martinus Nijhoff Publishers, 1996, p. 2543-2544.
TP PT Agreement between the Government of the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Northern
Ireland and the Government of the Dominican Republic concerning the delimitation of the Maritime
Boundary between the Domi nican Republic and the Turks and Caicos Islands, 2 August 1996 - See
International Maritime Boundaries, vol III, edited by Jonathan I. Charney and Lewis M. Alexander,
Martinus Nijhoff Publishers, 1996, p. 2239.
215
TP PT See the declaration of the Vietnamese minist er of foreign affairs, Mr. Nguyen Dy Nien ,
published by the Vietnamese newspaper Nhân Dân on 1 July 2004 (Annex RM 32) . See also Zou
Keyuan, “Implementing the United Nations Convention on the Law of the Sea in East Asia: Issues and
Trend”, Singapore Yearbook of International Law, vol. 9 (2005), p. 1.
TP6PT This Agreement between China and Viet Nam is also of important significance for this case
from the point of view of the method of delimitation used. The particulars of this case are similar to those
of the Romanian-Ukrainian maritime delimitation in the Black Sea. Thus, in the delimitation area, China
and Viet Nam have both adjacent and opposite coas ts, while the Vietnamese Bach Long Vi island (a
minor maritime feature situated at 110 km away from Viet Nam’ s mainland and 130 km away from the
125 217
8.120. The Agreement between Australia and Indonesia concluded in 1997 TPFFPwill,
when it enters into force, delimit certa in of the continental shelf boundaries
between the two States, as well as defining the exclusive economic zone
boundary between the two States. The Agreement is of note in this context due
to its treatment of the Ashmore Islands; those islands are not given full weight
in drawing the boundary with the opposite coast of the Indonesian island of
Roti, but are restricted to a 24 nautical mile belt of continental shelf and
exclusive economic zone as against Indonesi a, despite the fact that the line so-
drawn is considerably closer to the is lands than the median line between the
islands and the opposite coast of Indonesia.
218
8.121. Other examples include TPF :PT
¾ The islands Luibainah al-Saghirah and L ubainah al-Kabirah appear to have
been discounted when establishing the boundary of the continental shelf
219
between Bahrain and Saudi Arabia TPF ;PT
¾ In the delimitation of the continenta l shelf between Canada and Denmark
(Greenland) it appears that the islands Crozier, Franklin and Hans were
disregarded by the parties when establishing the boundary.
¾ The large Australian islands of Boigu and Saibai, together with their associated
island Aubusi and Moimi, and Duan a nd Kaumang respectively, were awarded
Hainan island of China), straddles the equidistant/ median line between the relevant coasts. The
delimitation line agreed upon by the two Parties was constructed “in line with the principles of equality ,
taking into consideration all circumstances concerned in the Gulf to reach an equal (sic) solution” – see
the declaration of the Vietnamese minister of foreign affairs, Mr. Nguyen Dy Nien published by the
217tnamese newspaper Nhân Dân on 1 July 2004 (Annex RM 32)
TP PT Australia/Indonesia, Treaty establishing an Exclusive Economic Zone Boundary and Certain
Seabed Boundaries, 14 March 1997 (not yet in force), International Legal Materials, vol. 36, p. 1053.
[1997] ATNIF 4, Arts. 1 and 2.
218
TP PT See Hiran W. Jayewardene, The Regime of Islands in International Law , Martinus Nijhoff
Publishers, 1990, p. 402
TP9PT See also International Maritime Boundaries, vol II, edited by Jonathan I. Charney and Lewis M.
Alexander, Martinus Nijhoff Publishers, 1996, p. 1489-1494.
126 only 3-mile belts of territorial sea (i n the agreement between Australia and
220
Papua-New Guinea) TPFPT
(iii) Conclusions
8.122. The general trend of international jurisp rudence and State practice may thus be
summarised as follows:
• Insular formations located at some distance from the mainland coast of a
State are to be treated as a “special circumstance” (or analogously, as a
“relevant circumstance” under cust omary international law) where
giving them full effect would result in an inequitable result, and
accordingly are to be given reduced e ffect, and most often no effect, in
constructing the line for the purposes of delimitation;
• Small formations are entitled to a maximum 12 nautical mile territorial
sea enclave, unless that enclave overl aps with the territorial sea of the
entitlement of the territory of anothe r State, cases in which the breadth
of their territorial sea is reduced accordingly;
• This approach has been adopted irre spective of the question of whether
or not such formations constituted “rocks” capable of sustaining human
habitation or an economic life of their own within the meaning of
Article 121(3) of the 1982 UNCLOS – in many of the cases they could
not have been qualified as such.
8.123. Most of the cases presented above, both from jurisprudence and State practice,
considered maritime features far more important than Serpents’ Island. Most of
these insular formations have sizes over 1-10 km P, are permanently inhabited
and have a developing economic life. They would not fall in the category of
rocks covered by Article 121(3) of the 1982 UNCLOS. Nonetheless, they were
given no or only a limited effect in te rms of the delimitation of the exclusive
TP0PT See also International Maritime Boundaries, vol I, edited by Jonathan I. Charney and Lewis M.
Alexander, Martinus Nijhoff Publishers, 1996, p. 932.
127 economic zones or the continental shel f between the mainland coasts of the
States concerned.
(c) The enclosed nature of the Black Sea as a special circumstance
8.124. The enclosed nature of the sea to be de limited is a constituent part of the wider
requirement to take account of the ge ographic context of the area to be
delimited, as a special/relevant circumstance in delimitation.
8.125. The relevance of the enclosed character of the Black Sea, seen in conjunction
with the existing delimitation agreements, as well as their possible
consequences were analysed in paras. 6.21-6.34 of Chapter 6 of this Memorial.
(7) Conclusions
8.126. In Chapter 11 of this Memorial, Romania will analyse the relevance of each of
the factors chosen by the Parties in Artic le 4 of the Additional Agreement for
the facts of this case. For the pr esent, however, th e following general
conclusions may be drawn:
(a) The five delimitation “principles” established by the Additional
Agreement show the significance attached by the Parties to an
equitable solution of delimitation;
(b) The systematic interpretation of the five principles, together with the
references to the international State practice and jurisprudence that
has to be respected in applying certain prin ciples, leads to the
conclusion that the approach to be taken in delimitation is the one
known as equitable principles-r elevant circumstances (under
customary international law as embodied by the 1982 UNCLOS),
equivalent to equidistance-special circumstances approach (under
the 1958 Convention), consisting in first drawing a provisional
128 equidistant/median line between th e relevant coasts, and then
eventually shifting it to take into account the relevant/special
circumstances;
(c) This above-mentioned approach is consistent not only with the
Additional Agreement, but also with the recent constant case-law of
this Court;
(d) By specifically referring, in the Additional Agreement, to Article
121 of the 1982 UNCLOS, at a time when this Convention was not
in force between the Parties, and by not objecting to the Romanian
declaration made upon signature, and confirmed upon ratification, of
UNLCLOS, Ukraine accepted the a pplicability of the third
paragraph of Article 121 to the present case;
(e) The provisional equidistance/median line to be established as part of
the delimitation process is drawn between the relevant mainland
coasts of the Parties, minor maritime formations being only
relevant/special circumstances to be considered at a later stage;
(f) Thus minor maritime formations are given limited, often no, effect;
(g) Proportionality is not an independe nt method of delimitation, but a
test of the equitableness of the delimitation solution;
(h) The enclosed character of the sea is a relevant/special circumstance
to be considered together with any pre-existing delimitation
agreements; in consequence, any new delimitation should not
dramatically depart from the method previously used in the same sea
between other riparian States in order not to produce inequitable
results.
129 PARTIII
THE EQUITABLESOLUTION CHAPTER 9
RELEVANT COASTS AND RELEVANT AREAS
(1) Introduction: the two sectors of delimitation
9.1 As summarised in Chapter 1, this Court s hould approach the delimitation in the
present case in two sectors, in accordance with the factual relations between the
coasts of the two Parties – adjacency and oppositeness.
9.2 The boundary between the territorial seas of the two States was described by the
2003 Border Regime Treaty as following th e course originally agreed in 1949
between Romania and the Soviet Union, and which has been adopted in every
agreement between both Romania and the USSR, and subsequently Ukraine
since that date. From Point 1439 as la id down in the 1949 Procès Verbal and
subsequent agreements, that boundary runs along a 12 nautical mile arc drawn
around Serpents’ Island until it reache s the last point laid down in the 2003
Border Regime Treaty (which Romania has defined as Point F), and which
constitutes the outer limit of Romania’s te rritorial sea and the outer limit of the
territorial sea around Serpents’ Island.
9.3 The course of this boundary is not within the scope of the present Application.
The Court should nevertheless take account of the 2003 Border Regime Treaty
since Point F, as the point where the outer limits of the territorial seas
appertaining to Romania and Ukraine inte rsect, constitutes the starting point of
the delimitation line, and since this Treaty confirmed the validity of the
previous documents concluded between Romania and the USSR.
9.4 The first sector of delimitation is the one where the relationship of adjacency
between the Romanian and Ukrainian coas ts is dominant. The boundary in this
first sector runs from Point F up to the turning point, where it becomes
governed by points on the Ukrainian coas t (on the Crimean peninsula) which are opposite to the Romanian coast. As already explained, the first segment of
the boundary in this sector was al ready agreed upon by treaties between
Romania and the USSR – it follows the 12 nm arc surrounding Serpents’ Island.
9.5 The second sector is the one where the coasts ar e opposite to each other, and
the boundary runs from the turning point in a broadly southerly direction.
9.6 At the most southerly extreme of this s ector, the Court is re quested to indicate
the direction of the maritime boundary, the precise location of the tri-point with
a third State being a matter for subsequent negotiations.
9.7 As discussed in Chapter 8, the correct a pproach in relation to both sectors is
first to draw a provisional equidistan t/median line (excluding any maritime
features that are not to be taken into account at this stage), and then, if
necessary, to adjust that line to ta ke account of any relevant/special
circumstances (including the provisi ons of any relevant agreement which
already established a certain sector of the boundary).
9.8 Given the circumstances of the coastlines of the two Parties, an approach on the
basis of two sectors, in the first of which the coasts are to be treated as adjacent,
and in the second of which the coasts are to be treated as opposite to each other,
is justified.
9.9 For example, the Court in the North Sea Continental Shelf cases observed that
“[i]n certain geographical situat ions… a given equidistance line
may partake in varying degrees both of the nature of a median and
of a lateral line.”TPF1FPT
9.10 Such situations occurred in different cas es before this Court or other arbitral
tribunals. Thus, in the Anglo-French C ontinental Shelf arbitration, the Tribunal
treated the delimitation in two distinct sectors, within the English Channel and
in the Atlantic. In the Tribunal’s words:
221
TPPT ICJ Reports 1969, p. 17 (para. 6).
132 “the actual coastlines of th e two countries abutting on the
continental shelf to be delimited are comparatively short; and …
although separated by some 100 miles of sea, their geographical
relation to each other vis-à-vis the continental shelf to222
delimited is one of lateral rather than opposite coasts.” TPF FPT
9.11 In the Gulf of Maine case, within the Gulf the re levant coastlines were opposite
to each other, whereas beyond the “closing line” of the Gulf of Maine they were
223
in a situation more like that of adjacent coasts. TPFFPT
9.12 In the Qatar-Bahrain case, the Court distinguished between the southern area
and the area further north in the Gulf. As the Court said:
“In the southern part of the delim itation area, which is situated
where the coasts of the Parties are opposite to each other, the
distance between these coasts is nowhere more than 24 nm…
More to the north, however, where the coasts of the two States
are no longer opposite to each other but are rather comparable to
adjacent coasts, the delimitation to be carried out will be one
between the continental shelf and exclusive economic zone
belonging to each of the Parties, ar eas in which States have only
sovereign rights and functional jurisdiction. Thus both Parties
have differentiated between a southern and a northern sector.” TPF FPT
9.13 The case of the delimitation of the maritime areas of Romania and Ukraine in
the Black Sea involves the adjacent coasts of the Parties in the Danube delta
region faced entirely, across a large expans e of sea, by the Ukrainian coast of
Crimea. Thus, the same approach as in previous cases where coasts of the
parties have been regarded as being in part adjacent to each other, and in part as
having the nature of opposite coasts, can be taken.
9.14 Given the geography of the relevant coas ts, the location of the turning point
where the relation of adjacency turns into oppositeness is easy to find. This
point, which will be hereafter referred to as "Point T", is constituted by the point
TP2PT RIAA, Vol. XVIII, p. 109 (para. 233); I.L.R 1977, vol. 54, p. 213; International Legal Materials,
vol. 18, p. 452.
223
TP PT Further within the Gulf and approaching th e area of the land bound ary between the United
States and Canada, the coastlines were in a situation of “lateral adjacency”; see Delimitation of the
Maritime Boundary in the Gulf of Maine Area, Judgment, ICJ Reports 1984, p. 334 (para. 216).
133 where the equidistance line changes fr om being governed by points located on
the coasts of Ukraine which are adjacent to those of Romania, to being
governed by points on the coast of the Ukrainian Crimean Peninsula opposite
the Romanian coast.
(2) Determination of the relevant coasts
9.15 As already explained in Chapter 8, the appropriate method to conduct the
delimitation of the maritime areas in this case is to first draw a provisional
equidistant/median line, then to eventually adjust it in case of relevant/special
circumstances that would justify this.
9.16 In order to draw the provisional equidistance/median line, the relevant coasts of
the two States have to be identified ; as stated by the Court in the case
concerning Land and Maritime Boundary between Cameroon and Nigeria
(Cameroon v. Nigeria):
“Before it can draw an equidistance line and consider whether
there are relevant circumstances that might make it necessary to
adjust that line, the Court must , however, define the relevant
coastlines of the Parties by reference to which the location of the
base points to be used in the construction of the equidistance line
will be determined.” TPFFPT
9.17 In the case concerning Maritime Delimitation and Territorial Questions
between Qatar and Bahrain , the Court defined the equidistance line in the
following terms:
“The equidistance line is the li ne every point of which is
equidistant from the nearest points on the baselines from which
the breadth of the territorial seas of each of the two States is
measured.” TPFFPT
224
TP PT Maritime Delimitation and Territorial Questions between Qatar and Bahrain, Judgment, ICJ
225orts 2001, pp. 91, 93 (paras. 169-170).
TP PT Land and Maritime Boundary between Cameroon and Nigeria (Cameroon v. Nigeria;
Equatorial Guinea intervening), ICJ Reports 2002, judgment of 10 October 2002, (para. 290).
TP6PT Maritime Delimitation and Territorial Questions between Qatar and Bahrain, Judgment, ICJ
Reports 2001, p. 94 (para. 177).
1349.18 However, in calculating relevant coast le ngths and areas in order to assess the
proportionality of a provisional delimitati on, it is not the entirety of the coast
line of the State which is to be taken in to account, but rather merely those areas
of the coast of which the maritime areas are the “natural prolongation”. As the
Court observed in the Tunisia/LibyaContinental Shelf case:
“for the purpose of delimitation betw een the Parties, it is not the
whole of the coast of each Party which can be taken into
account; the submarine extension of any part of the coast of one
Party which, because of its geographic situation, cannot overlap
with the extension of the coast of the other, is to be excluded
from further consideration by the C ourt. It is clear from the map
that there comes a point on the coast of each of the two Parties
beyond which the coast in questio n no longer has a relationship
with the coast of the other Party relevant for submarine
delimitation. The sea-bed areas off the coast beyond that point
cannot therefore constitute an ar ea of overlap of extensions of
the territories of 227 two parties and are therefore not relevant for
the delimitation” TPFFPT
9.19 As to geographical configuration of the coasts, the following elements need to
be considered.
9.20 The Romanian coast is indisputably com posed of two distinct sectors: a short
and more or less straight sector from th e last point of the river border with
Ukraine to the southern extremity of the Sacalin Peninsula, and a longer,
slightly concave sector from the extremity of the Sacalin Peninsula to the border
with Bulgaria. The first sect or is in a relation of ad jacency with the Ukrainian
coast situated to the north. At the same time, the whole Romanian coast is in a
relation of oppositeness with the Ukrainian coast of Crimea, which it faces. This
relation can be easily seen in Figure 11 (page 137 of this Memorial).
9.21 In respect to Ukraine, as to the coast of the Crimean peninsula, Figure 11
clearly shows that north to the Cape Tarkhankut th e Ukrainian coast suddenly
and completely changes direction and ends its relation of oppositeness towards
the Romanian coast. In the sector of adjacent coasts, the most salient point on
135 the Ukrainian coast is the southern point of the mouth of the Nistru/Dniestr
River (Romania will refer to this point as "Point S"). From this point, the
Ukrainian coast changes its direction and the maritime area situated to the north
of the Point S – Cape Tarkhankut line is analogous to an interior Ukrainian bay,
each of its coasts facing coasts belongi ng to the same State (Ukraine) and there
not being any Ukrainian water areas overlapping the Romanian ones.
9.22 Consequently, the maritime spaces situated to the north of the line Point S–Cape
Tarkhankut do not pertain to the area wher e the projections of the coasts of the
two Parties overlap and should not be taken into account in the delimitation
process.
9.23 Having regard to these elements, the coasts relevant for delimitation are as
follows:
Sector 1 (adjacent coasts) :
on the Romanian side : the coast situated between the last point of
the land/river border between Romania and Ukraine
(45°13'06''N, 29°40'00''E) and the outer extremity of the Sacalin
Peninsula (44°47'21''N, 29°32'55''E);
on the Ukrainian side : the coast situated between the last point of
the land/river border between Romania and Ukraine
(45°13'06''N, 29 °40'00''E) and Point S (46 °04'20''N,
30°28'30''E).
These are depicted on Figure 11 (page 137 of this Memorial).
227
TP PT Continental Shelf (Tunisia/Libyan Arab Jamahiriya), Judgment, ICJ Reports 1982 , pp. 61-62,
(para. 75).
136 Figure 11
The relevant coasts of the two
States Sector 2 (opposite coasts) :
on the Romanian side : the whole Romanian coast, defined by the
last point of the land/river bor der between Romania and Ukraine
(45°13'06''N, 29°40'00''E) to the north and the final point of the
land Romanian-Bulgarian border (43 °44'20''N, 28 °34'51''E) to
the south;
on the Ukrainian side : the Crimean coast between Cape
Tarkhankut (45 °20'50''N, 32 °29'43''E) to the north and Cape
Sarych (44°23'07''N, 33°44'28''E) to the south.
These are also depicted on Figure 11 (page 137 of this Memorial).
9.24 The respective lengths of the relevant coasts are accordingly:
Sector 1 U(adjacent coasts ): the Romanian coast: 70.25 km
the Ukrainian coast: 172.40 km.
Sector 2 U(opposite coasts): Uthe Romanian coast: 269.67 km
the Ukrainian coast: 215.74 km.
Total – relevant coasts : the Romanian coast: 269.67 km
the Ukrainian coast: 388.14 km.
9.25 As between the Romanian and the Uk rainian coasts there is a visible
discrepancy, the former being more linear, while the latter being more indented,
the calculation of the lengths of the baselines of the coasts is also useful:
Sector 1 U(adjacent coasts ): the Romanian baselines: 41.45 km
the Ukrainian baselines: 119.90 km.
Sector 2 U(opposite coasts): Uthe Romanian baselines: 204.90 km
the Ukrainian baselines: 172.73 km.
Total – baselines of relevant coasts : the Romanian baselines: 204.90 km
the Ukrainian baselines: 292.63 km. (3) The relevant area
9.26 Having regard to the comparative simplicity of the area to be delimited there is
no special difficulty in identifying the relevant area, i.e. the area potentially
affected by the delimitation. It is as follows:
In the north, this area is bordered by a line uniting Point S (46 °04'20''N
30°28'30''E) and Cape Tarkhankut (45 °20'50''N, 32 °29'43''E) on the
Ukrainian coasts.
In the south, it is borde red by the line equidistan t between the adjacent
Romanian and Bulgarian coasts TPF, the line median between the opposite
Romanian and Turkish coast and th e delimitation line agreed upon by the
USSR and Turkey, to which Ukraine confirmed its succession.
In the south-east this area shall be delimited by the meridian uniting the
suthern extremity of the Crimean Peninsula (Cape Sarych) with the
delimitation boundary between Ukraine and Turkey.
In the west and in the east the ar ea is bordered by the Romanian and
Ukrainian relevant coasts, as specified in paragraph 9.23 above.
9.27 As specified above, the maritime area situated north to the Point S–Cape
Tarkhankut line does not overlap with Romanian water areas and has no
significance for the delimitation which, as between adjacent coasts, is
determined by points much closer to the common land border and, as between
opposite coasts, is determined by the coastal frontage of the Crimean Peninsula.
9.28 As far as the southern limit of the de limitation area so defined is concerned, the
eventual extension of the relevant area s outh to this southern limit could affect
interests of third States, like Bulgaria and Turkey.
9.29 The relevant area is depicted on Figure 12 (page 140 of this Memorial).
228
TPPT The determination of the line equidistant between the Romanian and Bulgarian coasts is
calculated for the purposes of the present case and is not meant to prejudge on the Romanian-Bulgarian
negotiations for the delimitation of their maritime areas in the Black Sea.
139 Figure 12
The relevant delimitation area
140 CHAPTER 10
SERPENTS’ ISLAND AS A ROCK WITHIN THE SCOPE OF
ARTICLE 121(3) OF THE 1982 UNCLOS
(1) Introduction
10.1 As already specified in paras. 4.3-4.26 of this Memorial, by various
agreements concluded between Romania and the USSR starting from
1949, the two States established in principle the course of the maritime
boundary in the area of Serpents’ Is land, on the 12-mile arc around it.
But, independently of these agreem ents, the course of the boundary in
this region would be substantially the same, since, according to Article
121(3) of the 1982 UNCLOS, as well as to State practice and case-law as
shown in paras. 8.86-8.123 of this Memorial, this minor maritime feature
would be given nil effect in the de limitation of the exclusive economic
zones or the continental shelf of Romania and Ukraine.
10.2 The purpose of the present Chapter is to show that Serpents’ Island is a
rock incapable of sustaining human habitation or economic life of its
own, therefore having no ex clusive economic zone or continental shelf,
as provided for in Article 121(3) of the 1982 UNCLOS. Not only is this
the case on the normal interpretation of Article 121(3), but the Parties
acknowledged its relevance to the de limitation even before Article 121
was binding on them as a result of the entry into force of the 1982
UNCLOS between Romania and Ukraine. Paragraph 4(a) of the
Additional Agreement expressly refers to
“The principle stated in Article 121 of the United Nations’
Convention on the Law of the Sea of December 10, 1982 as applied in the practice of states and in international
229
jurisprudence.” TPFFPT
In addition, the Parties agreed on a 12 nm all-purpose maritime zone
around Serpents’ Island at the time it was forcibly transferred to the
Soviet Union in 1949. Taking into account all these circumstances,
Serpents’ Island should be given no additional effect in the delimitation.
(2) The meaning of the term “rocks” in Article 121 (3)
10.3 The term “rocks” in Article 121(3) should not be given a restrictive
definition. It is clear from an anal ysis of Article 121 as a whole that
“rocks” within the meaning of Article 121(3) are a subset of the category
of islands, i.e. they are naturally formed, entirely surrounded by water,
and above water at high tide; this corresponds to the general definition of
islands given in paragra ph 1. Moreover, this is also obvious from the
very inclusion of paragraph 3 within Article 121: both Part VIII and
Article 121 are entitled “Regime of Islands ” and the travaux
préparatoires of the Convention show that th e intent of the drafters was
to institute an exceptional regime in respect to very small islands
incapable of sustaining human life. The fact that rocks constitute
exceptions in respect to the general principle embodied in paragraph 2 of
Article 121 is clearly confirmed by th e words “Except as provided for in
paragraph 3…” which introduce paragraph 2.
10.4 Article 121(3) does not specify any si ze limit. There is no reason to limit
it to tiny features a few metres large, i.e. to mere isolated rocks; such
features could not on any view support human habitation or economic
life, so that if the word “rocks” wa s limited to such protuberances above
sea-level the qualifying phrase would be unnecessary. In the Jan Mayen
229
TPPT For an analysis of this principle, see above, para. 8.4-8.41 of this Memorial.
142 case, the Court appears to have ac cepted that the rocky island of Jan
Mayen did not fall within the categor y described in Article 121(3). But
Jan Mayen is a large and mountainous island roughly 50 kilometres in
length and varying between 2.5 and 16 kilometres in width, giving an
2 230
area of 380 km P.TPF FBy contrast, Serpents’ Island has an area of only 0.17
km P; in other words, Jan Mayen’s surface area is 2,235 times that of
Serpents’ Island.
10.5 Whatever maximum size threshold mi ght be set by interpretation of the
term “rocks”, Serpents’ Island does not surpass that threshold. As
correctly noted by the 13 July 2002 edition of the Ukrainian newspaper
Iug: “…even to denominate Serpents’ Islands an ‘island’ is excessive. Its
total length is 615 meters, its width is 560 meters and in narrower places
231
a little over 90 meters…” TPF FThe tiny surface of Serpents’ Island is
nevertheless an important element to be taken into account when
addressing the definition containe d in Article 121(3) of the 1982
UNCLOS. Its small size is, at least, an indication of its unfitness for
human habitation.
10.6 In all respects, taking into account its natural characteristics, Serpents’
Island qualifies as a “rock” within the meaning of Article 121(3):
(i) it is a rocky formation;
(ii)it is devoid of water sources other than rainfall, and virtually
devoid of soil, vegetation and fauna;
(iii) it is incapable of sustaining human life of its own; and
(iv)it is incapable of generating any economic life of its own.
TP0PT Maritime Delimitation in the Area between Greenland and Jan Mayen (Denmark v.
Norway), Judgment, ICJ Reports 1993, p. 46 (para. 15). See also Conciliation Commission on the
Continental Shelf Area Between Iceland and Jan Mayen : Report and Recommendations to the
Governments of Iceland and Norway , 20 International Legal Materials pp. 801-802. See also
International Maritime Boundaries, vol II, edited by Jonathan I. Charney and Lewis M.
231xander, Martinus Nijhoff Publishers, 1996, p. 1756.
TP PT Article titled “The apple of discord tasting like oil” , published in Iug, issue no. 51
(15053), of 13 July 2002;author: Alexandr Iurcenko (Annex RM 33).
14310.7 Furthermore, the relevance of Article 121(3) is to be analyzed in the light
of the Romanian declaration made upon signature of the 1982 UNCLOS
and confirmed upon ratification, which refers to the uninhabited islands
without economic life which cannot affect the delimitation of the
232
maritime areas belonging to the mainland coasts of States. TPFFPT
th
10.8 In this Chapter studies of various authors published at the end of the 19 P P
th
century and the first half of the 20 P Pcentury (until the Word War II), as
well as articles published in the Ukrainian press after Ukraine’s
independence in 1991, will be cited. Unfortunately, Romania could found
no documentary mentions of Serpen ts’ Island from th e period when it
was under Soviet rule (1948–1991); this is probably due to its then
military status, which might have been the reason for it not being covered
by public reports.
10.9 The studies and the other texts pu blished before 1948 which are cited
here were written at a period when Serpents’ Island belonged to Romania
and no change in its status was fore seen. Furthermore, the question of
delimitation of maritime areas between neighbouring States, let alone the
role of islands and other maritime features in such delimitations, was not
debated at that time. Thus, the author s of the quoted st udies could in no
way be suspected of trying to create a false image on Serpents’ Island in
order to bring about eventual benefits for Romania. The facts and images
presented in their writings represente d the reality of Serpents’ Island, as
perceived by the authors concerned.
10.10 As far as the recent Ukrainian articles are concerned, some explanations
are also relevant. Freedom of expression in Ukraine was under question
at the time these articles were published. This can be seen from
resolutions of bodies such as the Pa rliamentary Assembly of the Council
of Europe, which reported on the c ontrol the Ukrainian media were
232
TP PT See paras. 8.20-8.30 of this Memorial.
144 233
subjected to by the Ukrainian authorities at that time. TPF FPFor example, the
Rapporteur of the Council of Europe pointed out
“the strong tendency [of the Ukrainian State authorities] to
234
control and regulate everything” FP PT
The Ukrainian mass media were regarded as a political instrument for the
State officials of that period to promote their guidelines, by a
“continuing practice of imposi ng on journalists officially
approved guidelines (temnyki) for covering events, which
constitute[d] a newly-created type of implicit
censorship.” TPF FPT
10.11 In this context, the articles publishe d in the Ukrainian media, covering a
subject which was an issue of diplomatic debate with a neighbouring
State, can be considered as reflectin g not mere impressions of journalists
who reported on Serpents’ Island from the private sector, but rather the
quasi-official position of Ukraine . Comments published or broadcast by
the Ukrainian mass-media on this i ssue can be considered to have
expressed the position of the Ukrainian authorities in relation to the
situation of Serpents’ Island.
233
TP PT See the Opinion of the Committee on Culture and Education of the Parliamentary
Assembly of the Council of Europe on the freedom of expression in Ukraine , Rapporteur:
Andrzej Urbanczyk, Poland, Socialist Group; Doc. 8946/ 23 January 2001 ( Annex RM 34 ).
Referring, inter alia, to the well-known Gongadze Case, the rapporteur characterized Ukraine as
234e of the countries in Europe where the profession of journalist [wa]s the most dangerous".
TP PT Ibid.
TP5PT Resolution 1346 (2003) of the Parliamentary Assembly of the Council of Europe
"Honouring of obligations and commitments by Ukraine", para. 5 (vii) (Annex RM 35).
145 (i) Serpents’ Island is a rocky formation
10.12 It is not necessary in the present case for the Court to decide whether the
term “rocks” within Artic le 121(3) is restricted to insular formations
which geologically can be so describe d, i.e. that such formations are
composed mainly of stone and no or little accompanying soil. Whether
or not Article 121(3) applies to sand cays or similar formations is not in
point: it is clear that Serpents’ Island qualifies as a rock in the geological
sense. Geologically, Serpents’ Island is composed of hard siliceous grit-
stone, conglomerate and quartzite. In this context, it may be noted that it
has a composition similar to the mountai ns of Dobrogea, appearing to be
a natural sudden peak/rise of the prol ongation of the continental plate of
Dobrogea’s offshore. Its rocky character appears from Figures 3, 4 (page
18 of this Memorial), 13 - 22 (pages 147, 149, 153, 158, 182 and 183 of
this Memorial), as well as from further pictures annexed to this Memorial
(Annexes RM 89 to RM 93).
10.13 Various travellers, journalists, scientists or representatives of the
European Danube Commission have acknowledged its rocky
composition, providing details about its appearance. All these statements
reveal the fact that Serpent’s Island is – as the Ukrainian newspaper
236
“Kievskie Vedomosti” put it – “a rock of compact stone” TPF.PT
10.14 Thus, in 1856, in a report to Count Boul-Schauenstein, the Baron of
Hübner wrote
“It results from this work that this island,[…] is a rock of
small size, of a length of 600 metres and a circumference
237
of 2000 […]” TPF (emphasis added)
236
TP PT Article titled “The Tourist Island”, published in the Ukrainian newspaper Kievskie
Vedomosti, issue no. 56 (2861) of 17 March 2003; author: Serghei Milosevich (Annex RM 36).
TP7PT Report of Baron of Hübner to Count Boul-Schauenstein with respect to the condition of
Serpents’ Island: geographical data about it, opinion on who would be entitled to own it, etc.
Xerographic Collection of Vienna, CCVI/1, pp. 105-112 (Annex RM 37).
146 Figure 13
The rocks of Serpents’ Island
- from the 1931 volume of R. I. Călinescu ”Insula Şerpilor.
Schiţă monografică” – see Annex RM6
Figure 14
Image of Serpents’ Island
- from the 1931 volume of R.I. Călinescu ”Insula Şerpilor.
Schiţă monografică” – see Annex RM6
14710.15 In a report on the improvement of navigation on lower Danube, written in
1857 by C.A. Hartley, Chief Engin eer of the European Danube
Commission, it was recorded that:
“In respect of its geological composition, the island is
formed of a very rough sili ceous conglomerate, and the
huge blocs of stone which make up the cliffs that surround
it naturally sugge st the idea of using them for
constructions […]. But the tr ansportation would be very
difficult, given the isolated pos ition of the island and the
stormy character of the sea.” TF38FPT
10.16 In 1920, the European Danube Commission issued document no. 5/0, in
which it referred inter alia to the lighthouse on Serpents’ Island. It
noticed
“the transport difficulties to the island which is a lonely
rock situated at about 24 nautical miles from the mouth of
239
Sulina […]” TPFF(emphasis added).
10.17 R. I. Călinescu, in his monographic st udy on Serpents’ Island, published
in 1931, concluded:
“Serpents’ Island is entirely constituted of grit stones and
quartzite conglomerates, the same that Peters presumes to
exist in the Teli ţa Valey, under the loess, constituting the
subsoil of the delta towards the sea.
These grit stones and conglomerates are very wide-ranging
as particles, but they are monotonous as a composition,
being constituted almost en tirely of various ranges of
quartz. Usually there are grit stones and conglomerates
made out of a single sort of quartz, colourless, transparent
or translucent. […]
238
TP PT Report on the improvement of navigation on Lower Danube, presented to the European
Commission by Mr. C.A. Hartley, its chief-engineer, Galatz, 17 October 1857 , General
Department of the National Archives, Galatz, Romania, European Danube Commission, 5/1857-
2398, pp. 19-20 (Annex RM 38).
TP PT Document no. 5/0, issued by the Technical Department of the European Danube
Commission on 28 June 1920, at Sulina, General Department of the National Archives, Galatz,
Romania, European Danube Commission. S. G., 82/1919-1923, pp. 7,8 (Annex RM 39). Figure 15, 16
The cliffs and rocks of Serpents’ Island
- from the 1931 volume of R.I. Călinescu ”Insula Şerpilor.
Schiţă monografică” – see Annex RM6 According to Murgoci, the lit tle layer of red lehm (terra
rosa) maintained here on the quartzites or even
conglomerates (especially at eas t, as those at the base of
the loess) is a hint that the entire island has been covered
in the past with terra-rosa and loess, although the loess is
missing nowadays, as far as we know, being probably
washed out afterwards by the rains and the sea
waters…” TPF FPT
10.18 In an internal report addressed to the Romanian Minister for Home
Affairs in 1938, there is also a complete descrip tion of Serpents’ Island.
The authors of the report refer to it as
“… a huge oval monument of black stone, getting out
from the waves of the sea with a chapel (the lighthouse) in
its middle […]
The island is made up of volcanic rocks and is covered
with a thin layer of black soil, having its origin in
droppings of countless migratory birds…” TPF FPT
10.19 The Great Soviet Encyclopaedia described, in 1933, Serpents’ Island as
follows:
“Serpents’ Island (in Romanian, Insula Şerpilor) is a small
242
rocky island at the mouths of the Danube…” TPF FPT
10.20 In the 1938 Romanian newspaper Acţiunea, the author, D.L. Stahiescu,
also notes the rocky nature of Serpents’ Island:
“A remainder of a huge mountain that fell down under the
waters of the sea long time ago, it is obviously a
243
rock…” TPF FPT
240
TP PT R.I. Calinescu, Insula Şerpilor. Schi ţă monografic ă (Serpents’ Island. Monographic
Study), published in the Analele Dobrogei magazine, “Glasul Bucovinei” Publishing House,
Cernauti, 1931 (Annex RM 6), pp. 9-11.
241
TP PT Report addressed to the Romanian Minister for Home Affairs with respect to Serpents’
Island, drafted and signed by a Police Inspector and by the M.D. in Chief of the Ministry of
Home Affairs (indecipherable signatures), 14 May 1938 (Annex RM 40).
TP2PT The Great Soviet Encyclopaedia, Volume 27, Moscow, 1933, p. 74 (Annex RM 41).
243
TP PT Article titled “Insula Serpilor" ("Serpents’ Island)”, published in the Romanian
newspaper Acţiunea (The Action), issue 2343, of 25 March 1938; author: D. L. Stahiescu (Annex
RM 42).10.21 Ion Simionescu, in his Picturesque of Romania , volume I, Between
Danube and the Sea (1942) described the rocky appearance of Serpents’
Island:
“… you find yourself near the stony rock getting up about
20 metres, at the most, above th e sea level. [...] It is the
evidence remaining further to the falling down of
Dobrogea, as the foundation of the island is made up of
rocks similar to those of the northern shore of
Dobrogea.” TPF FPT
10.22 Serpents’ Island is subject to a cont inuous process of erosion, which was
noted by several of the scientists that studied it. In his 1894 study on
Serpents’ Island, the Romanian resear cher George Popa recalls a poem
by Festus Rufus Avienus, Descriptio orbis terrae , evoking the rocky
Leuce as a place where “the rocks unfasten due to the crumbling of the
245
land, their hollowed vault hanging above.” TPF FPT
10.23 Another Romanian scientist, R. I. Călinescu, in his already quoted work
from 1931, Serpents’ Island, also remarks that one can see, at each of the
edges of the maritime feature, big masses of fallen stone blocks.
According to the scientist,
“all these blocks represent the outcome of the crumbling
of the shore due to the ongoing striking of the waves, and
also due to the specific petrographic structure of the
246
island” TPF.PT
10.24 A comparison of older and contempor ary writings reveals the way in
which the island itself wes being eroded.
“Thus, Nordmann, comparing the island, in 1841, with the
map of Kritsky (drawn in 1824) reaches the conclusion
that ‘instead of 3 rocks elevated above the water, existing
in 1824 (in N-W), a collapse of the shores was produced,
244
TP SImnionescu, Pitorescul României (The Picturesque of Romania), volume I, Între
Dunăre şi mare (Between the Danube and the Sea), “Cartea Românească” Publishing House ,
1942 (Annex RM 43), p. 62.
TP5PT George Popa, Λευκη. Insula Şerpilor ( Λευκη. Serpents’ Island), in the Romanian
Magazine for History, Archaeology and Philology , published by the “I.V. Socecu” Publishing
House, Bucharest, 1894 (Annex RM 44), p. 13.
TP6PRa.Ili.nescu, Insula Şerpilor. Schi ţă monografic ă (Serpents’ Island. Monographic
Study), published in the Analele Dobrogei magazine, “Glasul Bucovinei” Publishing House,
Cernăuţi, 1931 (Annex RM 6), p. 2.
151 completely altering the appearance of this cape’ – ‘in S-W,
a significant opening, determined (perhaps) by the tearing
apart of the stone block; [ ...] among the caves mentioned
by the antique writers, only one still exists, on the South-
Western edge of the island, at the sea level’
Today, not even this cave is to be s een, only a mass of
rolled down rocks and boulders can be noticed in its
place.” TPF FPT
10.25 Călinescu draws the conclusion that
“the future of Serpents’ Isla nd is gloomy: sooner or later it
248
will perish, further to the action of the sea waves” TPF .PT
10.26 Mihai Drăghicescu, in his book published in 1943, The History of the
Main Landmarks on the Danube, from the Tisa’s Mouth to the Sea and
on the Sea Shore, from Varna to Odessa, remarks:
“There is no doubt about the fact that its [Serpents’
Island’s] dimensions are continuously shrinking because
249
of the strong striking waves.” TPF FPT
247
TP PT R.I. Calinescu, Insula Şerpilor. Schi ţă monografic ă (Serpents’ Island. Monographic
Study), published in the Analele Dobrogei magazine, “Glasul Bucovinei” Publishing House,
Cernăuţi, 1931 (Annex RM 6)., p. 12.
248
TP PT Ibid., p. 12.
TP9PT Mihai Drăghicescu, Istoricul principalelor puncte pe Dun ăre dela Gura Tisei pân ă la
Mare şi pe coastele m ării dela Varna la Odesa (The History of the Main Landmarks on the
Danube, from the Tisa’s Mouth to the Sea and on the Sea Shore, from Varna to Odessa),
Bucharest, 1943 (Annex RM 45), p.490.
152 Figure 17
The rocks on Serpents’ Island
- from the 1931 volume of Radu Călinescu ”Insula Şerpilor.
Schiţă monografică” – see Annex RM6
Figure 18
Inter-bellum picture of Serpents’ Island
As it is noticed, the rocky maritime feature exhibits no
ve getation, the only building being the lighthouse10.27 G. Ra şcu has a similar opinion, referring to the stormy waves “that
reduced its [Serpents' Island's] surface to less than a half.” TPFFPT
(ii) Serpents’ Island is devoid of water sources other than rainfall and
practically devoid of soil, vegetation and fauna
10.28 The rocky and poor soil of Serpents' Island only allows for very poor
vegetation. No mammals live on it – its fauna comprising mainly insects,
reptiles and birds. It is sporadically visited by migratory birds, but the
lack of any fresh water sources mean s that the feature remains generally
only a resting place for them.
10.29 The desolate appearance of Serp ents’ Island was noticed by foreign
travellers in the early 1800s. Thus, Edward Daniel Clarke, in the 1810
edition of his Travels in Various Countries of Europe, Asia and Africa ,
noted that Serpents’ Island
“is so small, that as we pa ssed we could view its whole
extent[...] It is quite bare; be ing covered only with a little
grass and very low herbage.” TPFFPT
10.30 These remarks are confirmed by numerous observers who studied
Serpents’ Island during the inter-war years, a period – it should be once
again emphasised – when its status and appurtenance were not in issue in
any way.
10.31 Thus, on 1 June 1926 Professor Al exandru Borza from the Cluj
University (Romania) visited Serpents’ Island. The results of his detailed
research on its vegetation were published in a booklet entitled Phyto-
sociologic observations on Serpents’ Island , published in 1929.
Professor Borza wrote that:
“…From the agents that caused the apparition of plants on
this island I have to mark off especially the waters of the
Black Sea. As shown by my experiments made in
TP0PT George Rascu, Insula Serpilor (Serpents’ Island), “Atelierele Grafice Emil Grabovschi”
Publishing House, Chişinău, 1940 (Annex RM 46), p.7.
251
TP PT Edward Daniel Clarke, Travels in various countries of Europe, Asia and Africa, Part the
First, Russia, Tartary and Turkey, Cambridge, Printed at the University Press by H. Watts, 1810,
p. 649-650 (Annex RM 47). collaboration with Mr. G. Bu joreanu (1926) using seeds of
21 species of plants existi ng on Serpents’ Island, all of
them might have come floating, preserving their
germinating power even after a period of 7-45-60 days of
damping and staying in water [...]
From information provided by the lighthouse keepers -
people from Sulina working on the island, I find that
extreme, prolonged draught, lack of rain and of water on
the island, as well as dryness of the air are the most striking
climacteric phenomena here. Fo r good reasons I can infer
that the minimal presence of the water factor and the
maximal evaporation due to solar heat are the most decisive
factors that influence the selection of the plants that arrived
by chance on the island and are trying to germinate here.
The plateau dominated by an extremely draughty climate,
with little rain and large ev aporation is covered [...] by a
thick bed of Gramineae and weeds, is a herbaceous steppe
[…].
During summertime the entire vegetation is dried or
yellow-greyish, only in small depressions Hordeum
leporinum remains still green [...]
The inconstancy of this association is certainly due to the
soil having little cohesion, which freezes and unfreezes,
252
slides and is disaggregated […]” TPF FPT
From these observations, Borza concluded that:
“the importance of the water f actor – in minimum, and of
evaporation – in maximum for the admission in the area of
this island of new plants brought by hazard on the island 253
and in their distribution is of a striking evidence” TPF.PT
10.32 Details about the flora and fauna on th e Serpents’ Island are given also by
George Popa, in his monographic st udy about this maritime feature,
th
carried out at the end of the 19 P Pcentury:
“There are no smelling flowers or plants; either trees or
bushes […]
252
TP PAlexan Bdorruza, Observaţiuni fitosociologice pe Insula Şerpilor (Phyto-sociological
observations on the Serpents’ Island), the Publishing House of the Romanian Naturalists Society,
Cluj, 1929 (Annex RM 48), p. 2-5.
TP3PAlexan Bdorruza, Observaţiuni fitosociologice pe Insula Şerpilor (Phyto-sociological
observations on the Serpents’ Island), the Publishing House of the Romanian Naturalists Society,
Cluj, 1929 (Annex RM 48), p. 6
155 The real masters of the island are, indeed, the birds. They
are countless, although there are only two species. The
yellow-legged gulls (larus cachinans) […] and the black
cormorants (phalacrocorax). The yellow-legged gulls are
white and beautiful, but they are so nasty, that will not
allow any other bird to rest on the island. They will even
chase people. […]
Apart from birds, there are black serpents (coluber hydrus)
wandering about on the island – an d that explains its very
name, the Serpents’ Island – having a small head, a red
belly and a 4-5 feet length. […]
Finally, the ultimate masters of the island, and, at the same
time, the most dangerous, are the so called scolopendrae
cingulatae 254ects, the most part of which hide in the
ground.” TPFFPT
10.33 The already mentioned internal report addressed to the Romanian Minister
for Home Affairs in 1938 mentions the fact that
“On the island there is no tree, the growing of taller plants
being hindered by powerful marine storms and the
thinness of the soil.
[…] During spring and autum n, a small scarce grass and
some little marine flowers cove r almost the entire island,
which is sprinkled, at sma ll distances, with big stone
blocks, belonging to the volcan ic rocks fundament of the
255
island.” TPFFPT
10.34 In 1938, in the Romanian newspaper Acţiunea ( The Action ), D.L.
Stahiescu writes:
“Having an area of 17 hectar es, the white rock, not too
high above the sea waters, seems, from far, the top of a
foamy wave turned into stone in the same place from
millennia. A remainder of a huge mountain that fell down
under the waters of the sea l ong time ago, it is obviously
a rock, covered only with a th in layer of soil strangely
kept and remained there. In the huge desert of the sombre
surrounding waters, the island is itself desert, inhabited
TPPT George Popa, Λευκη. Insula Şerpilor ( Λευκη. Serpents’ Island), in the Romanian
Magazine for History, Archaeology and Philology , published by the “I.V. Socecu” Publishing
House, Bucharest, 1894 (Annex RM 44), p. 6-7.
255
TPPT Report addressed to the Romanian Minister for Home Affairs with respect to Serpents’
Island, drafted and signed by a Po lice Inspector and by the M.D. in Chief of the Ministry for
Home Affairs (indecipherable signatures), 14 May 1938 (Annex RM 40).
156 only by birds that cross the ai r near the surface of the
waters, in order to catch th eir assiduously-searched prey
and by black serpents that crawl on the stones. With its
poverty and isolation, the island can be useful for us only
as a guarding border post in front of the mouths of the
256
Danube…” TPF FPT
10.35 Other observations are made, in his 1931 monographi c study about
Serpents’ Island, by R.I. C ălinescu, who collected his impressions in situ.
These remarks refer to the soil, vegetation and fauna of Serpents’ Island:
“Serpents’ Island is situated in the driest area of the East-
European steppes […]
Among the plants brought in th e island, it is obvious that
not all had the chance to acc limatise here; some species
disappeared sooner or later and they could no longer be
noticed.
The first to come, most likely the Graminaeae, brought by
man or birds, had the advant age of lacking concurrence,
although they had to fight w ith the poor condition of the
soil and with the clime of the island, very dry during
summer” TPF PT
10.36 In the same vein, G. Ra şcu, a teacher at the Military College and the
Theological Seminary in Chişinău, remarked in 1940, in his monographic
study dedicated to Serpents’ Island:
“Barren rock all over the place, on which Gramineae
hardly grows, green only in spring. Nowhere could I find
yellow soil or loess, which must have existed once, but it
was washed off by natural agents. Man can cultivate
nothing on this ingrate land […] The fauna of the island is
258
as poor as the flora.” TPFFPT
TPPT Article titled “Insula Serpilor (Serpents’ Island)”, published in the Romanian newspaper
Acţiunea (The Action), issue 2343, of 25 March 1938; author: D. L. Stahiescu (Annex RM 42).
TPPT R.I. Calinescu, Insula Şerpilor. Schi ţă monografic ă (Serpents’ Island. Monographic
Study), published in the Analele Dobrogei magazine, “Glasul Bucovinei” Publishing House,
258năuţi, 1931 (Annex RM 6), p. 13, 23.
TPPTGeRorascu, Insula Serpilor (Serpents’ Island), “Atelierele Grafice Emil Grabovschi”
Publishing House, Chişinău, 1940 (Annex RM 46), p. 8.
157 Figures 19, 20
The poor life on Serpents’ Islands
- pictures from the inter-bellum period - 10.37 Another relevant example in this respect is the chapter dedicated to
Serpents’ Island in România Pitorească (Picturesque Romania), published
in 1901, by the Romanian writer Alexandru Vlahuţă:
“We are on the top, near the lighthouse. There is no tree
about, no bush to be seen on the cracked limed wrinkles of
this island. The waves are sighing all around us. They
keep on coming from far away, like nations never to find
their peace, breaking in a howl by the rocky shores of the
island, constantly beating it as if wanting to put it out of
place” TPF .PT
10.38 Ion Simionescu also noted in his 1942 study about Serpents’ Island:
“The island is empty or almo st empty; it is not only the
fact that it is placed so far away that prevents it to be
populated, but also the inhospitable soil, rock burnt by the
steppe sun, little sprinkled by rain and randomly covered
with a thin layer of red soil, always dry […]
During summer, the island looks like burnt off, just like
the Dobrogea hills, just like the Popina island, of Raselm.
The steppe sun quickly burns it, while the tree shadow is
unknown there. Only during spring is it adorned with
some spots of green grass, sprinkled with few small
flowers of daisies, mallow, yellow little coins of
dandelion, and a small number of some other flowered
plants, small and ordinary. There are hardly about 40
plants, belonging to the category of the unhappy ones that
have no choice whatsoever. As they are supposed to
survive anyway, they do it wherever and however they
can.” TPFFPT
10.39 The sterile condition of Serpents’ Isla nd is also revealed by the fact that
there are no local fresh water resources – the only fresh water supplies
being provided by rain or by the ma inland. Numerous remarks, of those
visiting Serpents’ Island (including modern Ukrainia n sources) confirm
this assertion.
259
TP PT Alexandru Vlahuta, Romania Pitoreasc ă (Picturesque Romania), “I.V. Socecu”
260lishing House, Bucharest, 1901 (Annex RM 49), p. 63.
TP PT Ion Simionescu, Pitorescul României (The Picturesque of Romania), volume I, Între
Dunăre şi mare (Between the Danube and the Sea), “Cartea Românească” Publishing House, 1942
(Annex RM 43), pp. 63-64.10.40. Thus, as Mihai Dr ăghicescu concluded in his 1943 work, The History of
the Main Landmarks on the Danube, fr om the Tisa’s Mouth to the Sea
and on the Sea Shore, from Varna to Odessa,
“there aren’t any resources of fresh water but the rain water
collected in tanks and this water is not drinkable, because of
the snakes dead bodies…” TPFFPT
10.41. In the same work, the author reveals that
“in 1856, as it [Serpents' Island] had been occupied by the
Turkish army, they were compelled to bring drinkable water
from the Danube.” TPF FPT
10.42. In the same vein, the Roma nian scientist Raul I. Călinescu noted in 1931
the way people at the lighthouse supplie d themselves with fresh water.
He then noticed the existence of f our water tanks, two of them being
placed on each of the sides of the Is land, a third one, in its northern part
and a fourth, the most important one , in the yard of the lighthouse.
Referring to the latter, he described the way the rainwater was collected:
trough pipes and hoses, together with dirt and debris deposited on the
roof of the lighthouse building. TPF FPT
10.43. Reference to the necessity to use ra inwater, due to the lack of any other
water resource, is also made by the above-quoted 1938 report to the
Romanian Minister for Home Affairs – its authors drawing, in addition,
conclusions with respect to the conse quences that this kind of water had
on the health of the people at the lighthouse who drank it:
“The lack of fresh water on the island is hard to bear; the
few sailors and guardians of the lighthouse have to drink
rain water, which is collected in some big cement reservoirs.
TP1PMD irai ăghicescu, Istoricul principalelor puncte pe Dun ăre dela Gura Tisei pân ă la
Mare şi pe coastele m ării dela Varna la Odesa (The History of the Main Landmarks on the
Danube, from the Tisa’s Mouth to the Sea and on the Sea Shore, from Varna to Odessa),
Bucharest, 1943 (Annex RM 45), p. 492.
TP2PT Ibid., p. 491
263
TP PT R.I. Calinescu, Insula Şerpilor. Schi ţă monografic ă (Serpents’ Island. Monographic
Study), published in the Analele Dobrogei magazine, “Glasul Bucovinei” Publishing House,
Cernăuţi, 1931 (Annex RM 6), pp. 49-50.
160 This permanent need for wate r is more obvious in the case
of those brought up on the land, used to the land, as the rain
water can affect, in a negative way, the alimentary canal, as
a consequence of its strang e taste and of its specific
264
chemical composition.” TPF FPT
10.44. Nowadays, the want of fresh water continues to be one of the great
difficulties of Serpents’ Island. Th is fact is acknowledged by the
Ukrainian side too. Thus, according to the Ukrainian newspaper Moloda
Ukraina, in a 2002 article commenting on the measures undertaken by
the Ukrainian authorities to devel op the infrastructure on Serpents’
Island, “[…] in summer, significant s upplies of drinking water and fuel
were brought” TPFFthere. Further on, the author of the article underlines
that
“there is a series of problem s to which a solution has not
been found yet, among which the supplying with drinkable
water and the sewage” TPFF(emphasis added).
10.45. In the same vein, another Ukrainian newspaper, Golos Ukraini, of 23
April 2003, acknowledges the fact that
“because of the bad weather and storms, all supplies,
including potable water , are brought from the continent to
last for several months.” TPF FPT
10.46. Taking these factors into account, it is clear that the lack of vegetation,
the lack of fresh water, the scarcity of the soil to sustain such vegetation,
and life, in general, characterise Serpents’ Island. The efforts of the
Ukrainian authorities (referred to later in this Memorial) to change the
appearance of this maritime feature are relevant in a way which is
presumably unintended, as they reveal the genuine condition of Serpents’
264
TP PT Report addressed to the Romanian Minister for Home Affairs with respect to Serpents’
Island, drafted and signed by a Police Inspector an d by the M.D. in Chief of the Ministry for
Home Affairs (indecipherable signatures), 14 May 1938 (Annex RM 40).
265
TP PT Article titled “The taming of the serpents”, published by the Ukrainian newspaper
Ukraina Moloda, issue no. 167 (1973) of 12 September 2002; author: M. Axaniuk ( Annex RM
50).
266
267PT Ibid.
TP PT Article titled “A patch of Ukraine between sea and sky” , published in the Ukrainian
newspaper Golos Ukraini, issue no. 78 (3078) of 23 April 2003 (Annex RM 51).
161 Island. Thus, numerous Ukrainian ne wspapers, when talking about the
measures carried out by the aut horities in order to transform
Serpents’ Island, convey information about its actual state.
10.47. Recent Ukrainian articles show that the Ukrainian authorities have lately
brought fertile soil on Serp ents’ Island. Thus, on 7 P May 2003, the
newspaper Golos Ukraini notes that
“on Serpents’ Island in the Black Sea a little forest of acacias
and shrubs has appeared. The team of the ship GS-212 has
brought here young trees and 2 tons of fertile chernozem […].
Until now on the island there was only one tree, near the
268
lighthouse.” TPF FPT
10.48. In another article published on 17 March 2003 by the newspaper Kievskie
Vedomosti, it was noted that
“on this very little piece of land, with the dimensions of
500/600 meters, hundreds of trees and shrubs are to be
transplanted. This work is very complex, the island represents
a rock of compact stone and for the planting of the vegetation
it is necessary to make special excavations and to fill them up
with soil brought from the continent.” TPF FPT
10.49. An article entitled The little town of the lighthouse on Serpents’ Island
published by Odesskie Izvestia , on 3 November 2004, includes the
following paragraphs:
“Presently, the works for the creation of green areas continue.
The planting of 400 olive-trees is intended. As the director of
the “Ostrovnoe” Enterprise, Vi ktor Ostrogliada, mentioned,
the specialists of the Botanical Garden of Odessa have tried to
plant 18 species of trees and bushes on Serpents’ Island […]
Together with the trees, the ship will bring to the island about
270
8 tons of fertile soil for the plants” TPF PT
268
TP PT Article titled “Acacias are going to blossom on Serpents’ Island, too”, published in the
Ukrainian newspaper Golos Ukraini, issue no. 83 (3083), of 7 May 2003; author: Gheorghi
269otniuc (Annex RM 52).
TP PT Article titled “The Tourist Island”, published in the Ukrainian newspaper Kievskie
Vedomosti, issue no. 56 (2861); author: Serghei Milosevich (Annex RM 36).
270
TP PT Article titled “The little town of the lighthouse on Serpents’ Island”, published by the
Ukrainian newspaper Odesskie Izvestia, issue no. 207 (3025), of 3 November 2004 (Annex RM
53).
162(iii) Serpents’ Island is incapable of sustaining human habitation
10.50.Not only the isolation of Serpen ts’ Island, but also the natural
environment, the lack of fresh water, the hard climate and the
dependence on external supplies have always been constraints for even
temporary inhabitants. It is clea r that Serpents’ Island has never
sustained human life on a permanent basis.
10.51. This fact has been averred from the most remote antiquity. Serpents’
Island, known to the ancients under the name of “Leuce” or “the White”
in Greek, is said by Flavius Arrianus to have been “empty with
people” TPF1FPand Philostratus points out that “no one could build up a
272
dwelling here, either Greeks or Barbarians” TPF PTIn Res gestae, the Roman
historian Ammianus Marcellinus refers also to Serpents’ Island (Leuce),
as “the Leuce island with no inhabitants” (“ insula Leuce sine
273
habitatores”). TPF FPT
274
10.52. Dionisus Perigenet mentions the “deserted valleys of the island” TPF , while
Scylacis Caryandensis talks about Se rpents’ Island as an “island [...],
275
barren, it is true…” TPF FPT
10.53. The Romanian historian George Popa concludes a careful archaeological
study as follows:
“the soil which was exposed to natural influences from
each and every direction was not able to produce enough
food for families. Had Serpents’ Island become a
TP1PT Periplus Ponti Euxini , 32. Quoted by George Popa, Λευκη. Insula Şerpilor (Λευκη.
Serpents’ Island), in the Romanian Magazine for History, Archaeology and Philology, published
by the “I.V. Socecu” Publishing House, Bucharest, 1894 (Annex RM 44), p. 15.
272
TP PT Heroica. Quoted by George Popa, Λευκη. Insula Şerpilor (Λευκη. Serpents’ Island), in
the Romanian Magazine for History, Archaeology and Philology, published by the “I.V. Socecu”
Publishing House, Bucharest, 1894 (Annex RM 44), p. 19.
TP3PT Res gestae, XXII.8. Quoted by George Popa, Λευκη. Insula Şerpilor (Λευκη. Serpents’
Island), in the Romanian Magazine for History, Archaeology and Philology , published by the
“I.V. Socecu” Publishing House, Bucharest, 1894 (Annex RM 44), p. 10.
TP4PT Dionisus Perigenet, Orbis Descriptio. Quoted by George Popa, Λευκη. Insula Şerpilor
(Λευκη. Serpents’ Island), in the Romanian Magazine for History, Archaeology and Philology ,
published by the “I.V. Socecu” Publishing House, Bucharest, 1894 (Annex RM 44), p. 11.
275
TP PT Scylacis Caryandensis, Periplus, 68. Quoted by George Popa, Λευκη. Insula Şerpilor
(Λευκη. Serpents’ Island), in the Romanian Magazine for History, Archaeology and Philology ,
published by the “I.V. Socecu” Publishing House, Bucharest, 1894 (Annex RM 44), p. 10.
163 permanent residence, ancient relics, such as vessels,
statues etc., would have been thus destroyed and it is sure
that the great quantity of Roman-Greek coins would have
disappeared further to land cul tivation. First, the fear of
Achilles, then the fear of snakes and poverty, together with
uncertainty have always prevented people to settle their
276
dwellings on this solitary island.” TPF FPT
10.54. Frequent mentions of Serpents’ Island during the ancient times seem to
have been related to its presumed sacr ed character. It was regarded as a
holy place, and a series of tabo os, which confirm its uninhabited
character, are said to have been created in relation to it. Thus, Ammianus
Marcellinus underlines the fact that every sailor landing on the island had
to go back on his ship in the eveni ng, as it was said that spending the
night time there could put one’s life in danger. TPFFPT
10.55. Philostratus wrote that “it was absolutely forbidden for any woman to set
foot on the island.” He thus told the story of a young woman brought on
Serpents’ Island by a merchant, at Achilles’ request. Knowing the
interdiction, the merchant expressed its surprise at Achilles’ wish, but he
nevertheless fulfilled his task. After leaving the maid on the island, he
could hear her desperate cries, "as Achilles was tearing [her] apart in a
278
thousand pieces." TPFFPT
10.56. The reluctance of the anci ent people to step onto Serpents’ Island is also
mentioned by George Popa, in hi s 1894 monographic study, quoting the
philosopher Maximus of Tyr, who, in his work, Disertatio XV, 7, states
276
TP PGeo Prgea, Λευκη. Insula Şerpilor ( Λευκη. Serpents’ Island), in the Romanian
Magazine for History, Archaeology and Philology , published by the “I.V. Socecu” Publishing
House, Bucharest, 1894 (Annex RM 44), p. 29.
TP7P“ Vesperi repetunt naves: aiunt enim, non sine discrimine vitae illic quemquam
pernoctare” in Res gestae, XXII.8. Quoted by George Popa, Λευκη. Insula Şerpilor (Λευκη.
Serpents’ Island), in the Romanian Magazine for History, Archaeology and Philology, published
by the “I.V. Socecu” Publishing House, Bucharest, 1894 (Annex RM 44), p. 10.
278
TP PT Heroica. Quoted by George Popa, Λευκη. Insula Şerpilor (Λευκη. Serpents’ Island), in
the Romanian Magazine for History, Archaeology and Philology, published by the “I.V. Socecu”
Publishing House, Bucharest, 1894 (Annex RM 44), pp. 20-21.
164 that “no man willingly goes there, but in order for him to make
279
sacrifices.” TPF FPT
10.57. In 1837, the English author Edmund Spencer confirmed the ‘magical’
character of Serpents’ Island. Thus, he wrote that Serpents’ Island
“appears to have been an object of great interest to the
ancients. Some affirm it was sacred to Achilles, and given
him by Thetis: at all events, it contained his statue, and a
temple dedicated to his wors hip. Pindar called it the
Conspicuous Island: Euripides, the White shores of
Achilles; while Strabon and Arrien described it as Leuce,
the White Island, name that it still retains, in conjunction
with its modern appellation, “Serpents’ Island.” Various
absurd reports and traditions are current among the Greek,
Russian and Turkish mariners that navigate this sea; the
most generally credited being, that it is infested by
supernatural serpents of enormous size, which keep guard
over boundless treasures, and devour every human being
who has the temerity to land. St range to say, we find in the
records of Ammianus Marcellinus, that a similar belief
existed even in his days. So firmly, indeed, is this
superstitious opinion impresse d upon the mariners of the
Black Sea at the present time, that not a single man
belonging to the crew of any ship would venture to trust his
safety to the mercy of the hissing inhabitants of Serpents’
Island. And it is not, I believe, on record, that any traveller,
however daring, has performed th e exploit of exploring it,
notwithstanding the tempting f acility offered by the water
being twenty fathoms deep w ithin a cable’s length of the
shore” TPFF.T
10.58. This feeling towards Serpents’ Island is reported to have lasted until
modern times. Edward Daniel Clarke, remarked that
“An opportunity rarely occurs in which ships can lie-to in
order to visit it; and, if this was to happen, not a man of any
TP9PT George Popa, Λευκη. Insula Şerpilor ( Λευκη. Serpents’ Island), in the Romanian
Magazine for History, Archaeology and Philology , published by the “I.V. Socecu” Publishing
House, Bucharest, 1894 (Annex RM 44), p.14.
280
TP PT Edmund Spencer, Travels in Circassia, Krim, Tartar y, &c., including a stream voyage
down the Danube, from Vienna to Constantinople and round the Black Sea, in 1836, London,
Henry Colburn, Great Marlborough Street, 1837) (Annex RM 54), p. 214-215.
165 of their crews would venture on shore; […] neither is it
281
known that any traveller ever ventured here[…].” TPFFPT
10.59. This very status of sacredness attr ibuted to Serpents ’ Island should be
perceived as testimony to the special nature of this maritime feature –
which was never regarded as being able to sustain a common day-to-day
existence. No domestic settlements are re ported to have developed on
Serpents’ Island. The only relics found are of a religious kind, such as
tribute pottery, objects honouring Achille s, sacrifice vessels etc., while
the only construction (the temple dedicated to Achilles) served similar
purposes.
10.60. The situation of Serpents ’ Island is curiously sim ilar to the situation of
Filfla – the islet that, in the decision of this Court in Libya/Malta case
was referred to as a rock and de nied any entitlements to maritime
282
areas. TPF FPOn Filfla, a Christian chapel, dedicated to the Assumption of
th
Our Lady, was built inside a small cave, in the 14 P Pcentury.
10.61.As shown above, Serpents’ Island has never provided the necessary
conditions for normal daily living. The tough environment preventing
283
people to settle there, which wa s remarked by ancient witnesses TPF PT
continued to be pointed out by modern sources, as well.
10.62.A volume published in 1876 presents various pieces of information
related to Serpents’ Island. The au thor, who wrote under the pen-name
of Cyrille, tells the story of several Turkish sailors shipwrecked on
Serpents’ Island, whose adventures show that Serpents’ Island could not
ensure even survival at subsistence level:
TP1PT Edward Daniel Clarke, Travels in various countries of Europe, Asia and Africa, Part the
First, Russia, Tartary and Turkey, Cambridge, Printed at the U niversity Press by H. Watts, 1810,
p. 649-650 (Annex RM 47).
TP2PT See para. 8.40 of this Memorial.
283
TP PT As George Popa pointed out in his well documented study about the Serpents’ Island,
“There were no inhabitants on Leuce, according to all the quoted writers”. See George Popa,
Λευκη. Insula Şerpilor ( Λευκη. Serpents’ Island), in the Romanian Ma gazine for History,
Archaeology and Philology, published by the “I.V. Socecu” Publishing House, Bucharest, 1894
(Annex RM 44), p. 20.
166 “This island was once dedica ted to Achilles. Wonderful
stories about it were still told in the last century, as the
following:
Returning from Crimea, a Turkish ship captain named
Hassan, was thrown on Serpents’ Island by a terrible
storm. The shipwrecked, in num ber of twenty-five, built
shuts with the wrecks of their ship. They spent a whole
year in these desolated places, fighting nature’s elements
and supporting their miserable existence with flesh of big
fish, the capture of which often put them in great danger.
Thus, captain Hassan was one day engaged in a terrible
fight against a shark wei ghing nine hundred pounds. The
cast-away ended by eating one another; there survived
only four of these misfortuned, when the arrival of a ship 284
saved them from hopelessness and a certain death…” TPFFPT
10.63. For his part, the author describes Serpents’ Island as follows:
“this small sterile rock, situat ed almost at equal distance
285
from the mouths of Kilia and Sulina…” TPF.PT
10.64. The barren remoteness of Serpents’ Island represented an economic and,
moreover, a psychological argument for pe ople not to settle permanent
dwellings there. Its ha rsh living conditions, as well as the impression of
loneliness it created, are de scribed by most of its visitors – scientists,
journalists, border patrols, writers etc. Thus, G. Raşcu talked in his 1940
monographic study on Serpents’ Island about
“this mysterious rock beaten by the waves […] that
nobody ever visits, that nobody ever asks about and that is
reproduced not even on a posta l card in the bookstores of
Cetatea Albă or Constanţa […]
The appearance of the island, wh en one approaches it, is
impressive; huge rocks broken by the waves, with a
parallel and inclined stratification, cracked and blacken by
a moss of moisture and time. […] One would find himself
286
as isolated as on the Robinson’s island…” TPF FPT
TP4PT Cyrille, From Paris to Serpents’ Island across Romania, Hungary and the Mouths of the
Danube (De Paris à l’Île des Serpents à travers la Roumanie, la Hongrie et les bouches du
Danube), « Ernest Leroux » Publishing House, Paris, 1876 (Annnex RM 55), p. 62.
TP5PT Ibid., p. 63
TP6PT George Rascu, Insula Serpilor (Serpents’ Island), “Atelierele Grafice Emil Grabovschi”
Publishing House, Chişinău, 1940 (Annex RM 46), p. 3, 5, 7.
16710.65. In the same vein, Ion Simionescu noticed the hard living conditions on
Serpents’ Island, that provided a tough environment even for the animals
brought there:
“Only the guardian of the lighthouse, as well as a couple
of border patrols can be found there, living like exiled
people. There are also 2-3 goats and a poor donkey, master
of the place, but unhappy to be often starving, living, most
287
of the time, on an empty stomach [...].”(emphasis added) TPF FPT
10.66. And, as a conclusion to his trip on Serpents’ Island, this writer noted:
“Desolate now, as it has alwa ys been, it is not tempting.
Alone in the openness of the Bl ack Sea, at the dangerous
entrance of the area where the eastern wind raises
dangerous waves, the rocky is land is linked with the rich
imagination of the few navigators losing their way at the
mouths of the Istrus. [...] Toda y, it sits as deserted as it
was at the time of the Herodotus’ trips. At various, rather
long periods of time, a small ship brings the necessary
supplies to the lighthouse keeper, to the patrols taking care
of the light... The hugeness of the sea surrounds them.
Only the white restless sea-gulls accompany their
loneliness, shouldn’t their crie s be numbed by the furious
torment of the waves, pouri ng over the island a rain of
salted water, as perni288us to the life of the plants as it is
the burning sun.” TPFFPT
10.67.Moreover, according to the researches undertaken in 1938 by the
representatives of the Romanian Ministry for Home Affairs in a report to
the Minister for Home Affairs,
“the influence of Serpents’ Is land, situated on rocks, 40
meter high above the sea level, and 43 kilometres and 200
metres away from the last lighthouse of the Sulina dyke
and almost 50 kilometres away from the shores of the
mainland, which can never be seen, and with the
perspective of seeing and hear ing only the rhythm of the
waves, almost always stormy and accompanied by
continuously changing winds, (the influence) is damaging,
affecting the human nervous system, especially in the case
of the nervously sensitive people.
287
TP PT Ion Simionescu, Pitorescul României (The Picturesque of Romania), volume I, Între
Dunăre şi mare (Between the Danube and the Sea), “Cartea Românească” Publishing House ,
1942 (Annex RM 43), p. 63-64.
TP8PT Ibid., p. 65
168 These nervously sensitive peopl e are likely to be affected
by a specific debility, consis ting of a general depression,
nervous breakdowns, psychical asthenia, insomnia, etc.
The only preoccupation they can have in this monotonous
and irritating seclusion is but the continuous
preoccupation to save themselves from this sepulchre of
human oblivion.
Only the sea-gulls, with their wailing cries, comprising the
large population of the island to wards its edges, together
with the various species of birds can bring them a small
ray of hope.
The influence of the marine currents and of the salted air
of the island is even worse as far as the human respiratory
system is concerned, provoking lung respiratory
modifications, dry and liquid pl eurisies, these diseases
being likely to aggravate if the staying on the island of
those aff289ed is prolonged, and even likely to provoke
death.” TPFFPT
10.68. The extreme harshness of human lif e on Serpents’ Island is caused not
only by the scarcity of supplies or by its isolating position, but also by the
capriciousness of its climate, characterised by strong winds, often storms,
and, generally, by more than uncomfortable temperatures during summer
or winter. Thus, as R.I. C ălinescu mentioned in his monographic study,
further to direct experience and observations,
“Hurricanes are not rare at all on Serpents’ Island,
especially during winter.
Thus, on Christmas day (25.XII.1930), the lighthouse
tower, otherwise a very solid construction, shifted from its
place and the wall of the building it was attached to broke
– just like the lightening conductor”.
“Fog is a frequent phenome non in winter and spring,
presenting great hazards for na vigation. In foggy weather,
in 1914 a British ship of the Weston Company went ashore
on the rocks of the island, failing to notice the light of the
lighthouse installed here.” TPFFPT
10.69. These remarks are endorsed by the Ukrainian media, as shown by several
press reports with respect to the conditions on Serpents’ Island, published
TPPT Report addressed to the Romanian Minister for Home Affairs with respect to Serpents’
Island, drafted and signed by a Po lice Inspector and by the M.D. in chief of the Ministry for
Home Affairs, (indecipherable signatures), 14 May 1938 (Annex RM 40).
169 in the Ukrainian press. As the Ukrainian newspaper Golos Ukraini
noticed,
“The only entertainment of the people on the island is,
during winter, the TV, while during summer, bathing in
the sea and picnics. ‘Once th e bad weather arrives, the
island is hit by winds from everywhere, so that we have to
protect our windows with shutte rs, so that they would not
be broken.’ Because of the bad weather and the storms, all
supplies, including potable wa ter, are brought from the
291
continent, to last for a several months.” TPF FPT
10.70.As a further example in this re spect, another Ukrainian journalist
mentions, in Odeskie Izvestia , the difficult weathe r conditions on the
Island, pointing out “the strong marine winds”, as well as the fact that,
292
“during summer, the soil can reach temperatures as high as 50°-60°C.” TPFFPT
10.71. The difficult conditions on Serpents ’ Island had already been recognised
in an article published on 19 Augu st 1995, where the author, Anatoli
Murahovski, shares this appreciation:
“Serpents’ Island is a difficult place to live. There are no
plants, with the exception of sparse grass and some thorns
and, of course, there is no drin king water. In the summer
the sun is merciless, while in the winter a piercing wind
293
blows…” TPFFPT
10.72.In the same vein, the author of an article published in the 2002
Vecherniia Odessa newspaper draws the conclusion that “nowadays,
Serpents’ Island represents: 18 ha of rocky land, brambles and one tree
[…]”, to further complete her “definition” with the following elements:
“Serpents’ Island represents also the romanticism of this
rocky island and the tough lif e of people living here; the
TP0PT R.I. Calinescu, Insula Şerpilor. Schi ţă monografic ă (Serpents’ Island. Monographic
Study), published in the Analele Dobrogei magazine, “Glasul Bucovinei” Publishing House,
Cernăuţi, 1931 (Annex RM 6), p. 13-15.
TP1PT Article titled “A patch of Ukraine between sea and sky”, published in the Ukrainian
newspaper Golos Ukraini, issue no. 78 (3078), of 23 April 2003 (Annex RM 51).
292
TP PT Article titled “The number of the islanders is going to increase”, published in the
Ukrainian newspaper Odeskie Izvestia , issue no. 192 (2766), of 16 October 2003; author:
Vladislav Kitik (Annex RM 56).
293
TP PT Article titled “The Serpents’ Island is the most important island in the Black Sea and it
belongs to Ukraine”, published in the Ukrainian newspaper Zerkalo Nedeli, issue of 19 August
1995; author: A. Murahovski (Annex RM 57).
170 294
service, in which one year counts as two, is difficult.” TPF FPT
(emphasis added).
10.73. Considering all these natural circumstances which do not favour a normal
human habitation, it is not surprising that Serpents’ Island has never been
inhabited by a permanent population.
10.74. This later fact is acknowledged, for example, by the 1920 Black Sea
Pilot, published in London, for the H ydrographic Department of the
Admiralty, which, when giving details about Serpents’ Island, points out
that
“The only people on the island are the light-keepers and
295
the sentries to whom provisions are sent monthly.” TPF FPT
10.75. In 1930, the eighth edition of the same Black Sea Pilot confirms that “the
296
only people on the island are the light-keepers and some soldiers” TPF PT
10.76. This fact is revealed by other source s, too, with respect to various other
years. Thus, the 1933 edition of the Great Soviet Encyclopaedia
mentioned that "except for the guar dians of the lighthouse and of the
Romanian border patrols, there is no population" TPF Fon Serpents' Island.
According to G. Popa, in 1891 the lighthouse was guarded by one
298
sergeant and six soldiers TPF . In April 1931, there we re one corporal and
three soldiers (and two other soldiers , who had been sent here by way of
punishment). TPF FPT
TP4PT Article titled “Serpents’ Island of the Kilia District” , published in the Ukrainian
newspaper Vecherniia Odessa, issue no. 27 (7565) of 19 February 2002; author: Dora Dukova
(Annex RM 58).
295
TP PT The Black Sea Pilot comprising the Dardanelles, Sea of Marmara, Bosporus, Black Sea,
and Sea of Azov , Seventh Edition, 1920, London, printed by the Hydrographic Department,
Admiralty, p. 218 (Annex RM 59).
296
TP PT The Black Sea Pilot comprising the Dardanelles, Sea of Marmara, Bosporus, Black Sea,
and Sea of Azov , Eighth Edition, 1930, London, printed by the Hydrographic Department,
Admiralty, p. 168 (Annex RM 60).
TP7PT The Soviet Great Encyclopaedia, Volume 27, Moscow, 1933, p. 74 (Annex RM 41).
298
TP PT George Popa, Λευκη. Insula Şerpilor ( Λευκη. Serpents’ Island), in the Romanian
Magazine for History, Archaeology and Philology , published by the “I.V. Socecu” Publishing
House, Bucharest, 1894 (Annex RM 44), p. 5.
TP9PT R.I. Calinescu, Insula Şerpilor. Schi ţă monografic ă (Serpents’ Island. Monographic
Study), published in the Analele Dobrogei magazine, “Glasul Bucovinei” Publishing House,
Cernăuţi, 1931 (Annex RM 6), p. 50.
17110.77. As far as the civil staff is concerne d, whose duty was to take care of the
lighthouse, they are reported to be ve ry few, as well: there were four in
1891 TPF0 PTthree in 1931 TPF , three in 1933 TPF PT
10.78. All the elements presented above clearly demonstrate that Serpents’
Island is inappropriate for human ha bitation. Its only inhabitants were
(and still are) the guardians of the lighthouse, soldiers or customs officers
posted on it. As Kolb points out, the criterion of “human habitation” of a
rock implies that it be capable of sustaining “human groups steadily
rooted and organized”, which “have the intention to establish there a
303
much more global connection” TPF FPThis view is larg ely shared by other
304
commentators TPF PTClearly, Serpents’ Island does not meet this criterion.
10.79. At a time when human life can be supported in outer space for long
periods, it is in theory possible, assuming the expenditure of enough
resources and money, to permit human survival on any area marginally
above sea level. It cannot be the co rrect interpretation of Article 121(3)
that a maritime formation falls outsid e its scope as long as there is some
area where a human being can survive above water level when supported
by supplies from the mainland. And that is all that Serpents’ Island is – a
barren outcrop that supports nothing and produces nothing.
TP0PT George Popa, Λευκη. Insula Şerpilor ( Λευκη. Serpents’ Island), in the Romanian
Magazine for History, Archaeology and Philology , published by the “I.V. Socecu” Publishing
House, Bucharest, 1894 (Annex RM 44), p. 5.
TP1PT R.I. Calinescu, Insula Şerpilor. Schi ţă monografic ă (Serpents’ Island. Monographic
Study), published in the Analele Dobrogei magazine, “Glasul Bucovinei” Publishing House,
Cernăuţi, 1931 (Annex RM 6), p. (47).
302
TP PT Document no. 2093/345, of 10 August 1933, issued by the Technical Service of the
European Danube Commission, Sulina, General Department of the National Archives, European
Danube Commission, S. G., 364/1929-1939, p. 127 (Annex RM 61).
TP3PT R. Kolb, L’interprétation de l’article 121, paragraphe 3, de la Convention de Montego
Bay sur le droit de la mer : Les rochers qui ne se prêtent pas à l’habitation humaine ou à une vie
économique propre, A.F.D.I., vol. XL, 1994, p. 906.
TP4PT See e.g. G.Gidel, Le droit international public de la mer. Le temps de paix, Tome III, La
mer territoriale et la zone contiguë, Sirey, Paris, 1934, p. 684 ; S. Karagiannis, Les rochers qui ne
se prêtent pas à l’habitation humaine ou à une vie économique propre et le droit de la mer, 29
Revue belge de Droit international, 559 (1996), p. 572; J.M. van Dyke, R.A. Brooks,
Uninhabited Islands: Their Impact on th e Ownership of the Oceans’ Resources, 12 Ocean
Development and International Law 265 (1983), p. 286.
172 (iv) Serpents’ Island is incapable of sustaining any economic life of its own
10.80. As shown above, Serpents’ Island has never had a settled population.
Only military and similar personnel have ever been stationed there, and
only because they are obeying orders to be there. It has never had any
industrial or agricultura l activity. It has no har bour or other natural
feature that would make it useful fo r trade. No natural resources have
been discovered on Serpents’ Island. Moreover, access to the island is
very difficult.
10.81. Leaving aside some other recent artificial activities promoted by Ukraine
305
in view of the present case, TPFFthe only activities of any sort which have
taken place on Serpents’ Island have been military and the keeping of the
lighthouse. Even those very special and limited activities must be
sustained at great cost and difficu lty and are dependent exclusively on
external supplies.
10.82. Human survival on Serpents’ Island depends on the continual importation
not only of water but of all other supp lies. The people sent to live there
(military and lighthouse staff) have to be continually provided with
supplies in order to be ab le to survive and this s upply itself is extremely
difficult.
10.83. This is no new phenomenon. A memorandum of the Inspectorate for
Harbour Navigation (issued at Gala tz, on 12 October 1894) reports that,
up to 16 April 1894, the ship Bistriţa remained anchored at Sulina, “as it
306
was used for the inspection and for the supplying of Serpents’ Island”. TPFFPT
There are also reports about a certain ship Griviţa in charge with
307
supplying Serpents’ Island. TPFFPT
305
TP PT See paras. 10.101-10.131 of this Chapter below.
TP6PT Documente privind istoria militar ă a poporului român - iu lie 1891-decembrie 1894
(Documents on the Military History of the Romanian People – July 1891 – December 1894) ,
307tura Militară (Military Publishing House), Bucharest 1976(Annex RM 62), p. 431.
TP PT Documente privind istoria militar ă a poporului român - iu lie 1891-decembrie 1894
(Documents on the Military History of the Romanian People – July 1891 – December 1894) ,
Editura Militară (Military Publishing House), Bucharest 1976(Annex RM 62), p. 457.
17310.84. A hard frost was mentioned to have happened in 1929, when the sea was
frozen for several kilometres around Serpents’ Island, compelling the
civil and military staff to remain there completely isolated for a two
month period. Fortunately they had a sufficient store to survive until the
thaw, though with considerable hardship. TPFFPT
10.85.In 1935, in the Romanian newspaper Curentul, the journalist I.
Dimitrescu referred to the fact th at the lighthouse keepers and the
soldiers posted on Serpents’ Island had to bring all necessary supplies for
their stay there. Further, the same journalist introduced a terrible image
of the living conditions on Serpents’ Island:
“There is no need to spend money at the movies should you
want to offer yourself a show of a remarkable nightmare,
populated by horrible adventures and sadistic tortures.
Neither ‘The Count of Monte-Cristo’, nor ‘The Vampire of
Prague’ will overdo it, with th eir macabre festive scenes –
this is the tragic experience of the sailors that the hazardous
fate punished to the forced seclusion on Serpents’ Island, our
modest colony in the East!...
You read in the yesterday newspaper the dramatic
description of Mr. Gh. Economu, recently returned from a
study expedition on the little is land, and you are stunned: the
existence of the five sailors an d of the three guardians of the
lighthouse is not, today […] more compassionate than that of
the invaded people during the time of the Volsces.
One month leave – in order fo r them to recover from the
neurosis of solitude – this is the only gratification awarded to
the lighthouse guardians after three months of vigilant
guarding; for the whole period of this guarding – that
definitely looks like the stayi ng in a penitent iary cell – the
miserable convicts will bring, wh en they settle there, the
necessary supplies, the corn flour for the whole trimester.
Once left among serpents by the ship of the European
Commission, the poor guardians are forgotten in the
subsistence of hurricanes and hail : if one of them gets sick,
he will treat himself with lizar d juice or reptile mush – just
like during the brave times of Pyrrhus…
A heavy piece of the lighthouse fell and broke the leg of
one of the guardians, about th e middle of last month: for
three nights in a row have the comrades of the misfortunate
begged, through light signals, fo r the urgent help of the
maritime bosses in Sulina. Three days later, when gangrene
TPPRa.Ili.nescu, Insula Şerpilor. Schi ţă monografic ă (Serpents’ Island. Monographic
Study), published in the Analele Dobrogei magazine, by “Glasul Bucovinei” Publishing House,
Cernăuţi, 1931 (Annex RM 6), p.15.
174 had already begun to attack the metatarsus of the wounded,
here came the leisurely ship of the European
309
Commission!” TPF FPT
10.86. On 8 June 1944, a group of Romanian soldiers were sent to Serpents’
Island, with a view to rebuilding the lighthouse building, damaged by
bombing. One of these militaries , major (retired) Silviu Stef ănescu recalls
that they “remained there until 20 August 1944, when, by a radiogram,
[they] informed about the fact that [they] had no more food and that,
especially, the water supplies were ge tting shorter”. Two days later they
310
were rescued by a ship that brought them all to Sulina. TPF FPT
10.87. As mentioned before, in 1920, the European Danube Commission referred
inter alia to the lighthouse on Serpents’ Island. In this context it noted:
“ the transport difficulties to the island which is a lonely
rock situated at about 24 nautical miles from the mouth of
311
Sulina ” TPF FPT
10.88. Similarly, the Romanian authors Cucu and Vlăsceanu describe the hazards
for ships trying to land there:
“At first sight, it would seem that these depths are
favourable for the ships anchor ing even near the shore,
except in the north, but in fact this is far from the truth.
Firstly, the mentioned gulfs are extremely large and offer
no convenient shelter for the sh ips, secondly, a specific
petrographic structure of the island, under the action of the
waves, causes the crumbling of the shores. The island is
surrounded by fragments of st one, and bigger and smaller
blocks, submerged or risen above the water, can be seen
everywhere. Bigger clusters of rocks can be seen
especially in the NW, SE, NE and SW of the so-called
TPPT Article titled “Geamanduri în uniform ă” (“Buoys in Uniform” ), published in the
Romanian newspaper Curentul, issue 2795 of 14 November 1935; author Ion Dimitrescu (Annex
RM 63).
TPPT Major (retired) Silviu Ştefănescu, Din amintirile veteranilor (War Veterans’ Memories),
published in Revista de istorie militară (Military History Magazine), issue no 3 (31)/1995, p. 48
311nex RM 10).
TPPT Document no. 5/0 of 28 June 1920, issued by the European Danube Commission,
General Department of the National Archives, Galatz, Romania, European Danube Commission,
S. G., 82/1919-1923 (Annex RM 39), pp.7,8.
175 quadrilateral. No ship dares to come nearer than 50 meters
312
from the shores…” TPF FPT
10.89. The difficulties of getting ashore Serp ents’ Island are also mentioned by
G. Rascu:
“the way to the island is usually hard to go on […]. The
ship needs to anchor in the open sea, as the submarine
rocks allow only for a boat to ashore and, what is more,
313
only when the weather is calm.” TPF FPT
10.90. The danger of getting near the island was noted, by Mihai Draghicescu,
as well, in The History of the Main Landmarks on the Danube, from the
Tisa’s Mouth to the Sea and on the Sea Shore, from Varna to Odessa:
“Getting near and landing on the island is dangerous to
ships, because of the shallow waters and of the rocks
spread under the water up to a great distance around. [...]
[B]ecause of its reduced dimensions, the island cannot
shelter ships against the waves.” TPF4FPT
10.91. Ion Simionescu, in his Picturesque of Romania, also notes:
“the landing of the small ship is difficult. It is compelled to
anchor in the open sea, as the stone fangs, blackened by
the sea-weed dressing are dangerous needles even for the
thicker belly of a torpedo boat. The broken skeleton of a
ship, thrown by the storms much too near the island urges
315
to precaution.” TPF FPT
10.92.These hard conditions of living, ar tificially mainta ined by external
supplies of drinking water and food are confirmed by articles recently
published in Ukrainian newspapers, wh ich stress that the only possible
regular link with the outside world is by helicopter:
312
TP PT Vasile Cucu, Gheorghe Vl ăsceanu, Insula Şerpilor (Serpents’ Island), „Viaţa
Românească” Publishing House, Bucharest, 1991 (Annex RM 5), pp. 15-16.
TP3PGeR orascu, Insula Serpilor (Serpents’ Island), “Atelierele Grafice Emil Grabovschi”
Publishing House, Chişinău, 1940 (Annex RM 46), p. 4-5.
TP4PMD irai ăghicescu, Istoricul principalelor puncte pe Dun ăre dela Gura Tisei pân ă la
Mare şi pe coastele m ării dela Varna la Odesa (The History of the Main Landmarks on the
Danube, from the Tisa’s Mouth to the Sea and on the Sea Shore, from Varna to Odessa),
Bucharest, 1943 (Annex RM 45), p. 491.
315
TP SIimnionescu, Pitorescul României (The Picturesque of Romania), volume I, Între
Dunăre şi mare (Between the Danube and the Sea), “Cartea Românească” Publishing House ,
1942 (Annex RM 43), p. 63.
176 “the rocky vertical shores and underwater rocks do not
permit the maintaining of regular links with the
316
continent.” TPFFPT
10.93. An article published by the Vecernia Odessa on 19 February 2002, notes:
“... Serpents’ Island represents also the romanticism of
this rocky island and the tough life of people living here;
the service, in which one year counts as two, is difficult.
On the island the heating is done by hearths, the only TV
channel that can be received is ‘Inter’, but only when the
weather is fine. The medical assistance is done by a
paramedic. But when urgent medical help is needed?
There is a helicopter, but there isn’t always the fuel for
taking off. There is a need for an energy cable and for a
communication cable, but, most of all, there is a need for
317
a landing stage.” TPF FPT
10.94. The Ukrainian daily Iug noted on 23 March 2002 that:
“The necessary transports between the island and
mainland are few and are done by a helicopter that secures
only the transport on the is land of those securing the
service on a rotational basis and only a minimum of all
318
that is needed.” TPF FPT
10.95. The 13 July 2002 edition of the same newspaper remarked that
“Right now ships can approach the island at the most 400
meters distance, and boats at 100 meters. So the goods are
brought on the island with a he licopter, which is very
expensive… In the case of a more or less serious storm
the ships cannot remain near the shore and have to take to
the open sea.” TPF FPT
10.96. Thedaily Moloda Ukraina noted on 12 September 2002 that:
TP6PT Article titled “The map of depths near Serpents’ Island – navigation of maritime ships to
the island is to be ensured by the experts of the GOSHIDROGRAFIA enterprise, of Ukraine”,
published by the Ukrainian newspaper Odesskie Izvestia, issue no. 213 (2541) of 13 November
2002, quoting Alexandr Boris, first deputy director of Ukrmorcartografia (a State-owned
317tographic enterprise) (Annex RM 64).
TP PT Article titled “Serpents’ Island of the Kilia District” , published in the Ukrainian
newspaper Vecherniia Odessa, issue no. 27 (7565) of 19 February 2002; author: Dora Dukova
(Annex RM 58).
TP8PT Article titled “The Military does not need Serpents’ Island” , published in the Ukrainian
newspaper Iug, issue no. 22 (15024) of 23 March 2002; unsigned (Annex RM 65).
319
TP PT Article titled “The apple of discord tasting like oil” , published in Iug, issue no. 51
(15053), of 13 July 2002; author: Alexandr Iurcenko (Annex RM 33).
177 “Until now, the helicopter remains the only means of
transportation for the border guards, the researchers and
the construction workers that live and work on the island.
In summer, significant supplies of drinking water and fuel
were brought, and at this moment repairs at the
administrative buildings are under way. There is a series of
problems to which a solution has not been found yet,
among which the supplying with drinkable water and the
sewage... The officials in Ki ev are surprised that the
financing of construction and setting works (which are
initiated by the capital mainly for political reasons) are left
to the local administration.” TPFFPT
10.97.Similarly, the edition of Golos Ukraini of 23 April 2003 describes
Serpents’ Island as being a
“rocky land with a surface of 1,5 square kilometres,
surrounded by sea at 12 miles from the shore, where the
links with the external world are limited to the rare
helicopter flights and the lette rs of the beloved ones...
Today on this island live around 30 people: the border
guards that service the local bo rder post, the supervisor of
the lighthouse with his wife and daughter… The island is
hit by winds from everywhere, so that we have to protect
our windows with shutters so that they would not be
broken. Because of the bad w eather and the storms, all
supplies, including potable wa ter, are brought from the
321
continent to last for several months.” TPF FPT
10.98. An article published by the daily Fakti on 6 October 2004 quotes the
radiotelegraphist Tatiana Litvinenko as saying that:
“Of course we don’t have a store […] We have to bake
bread, but there are enough food supplies [...] For the rest,
we order all the other commodities, for personal hygiene,
medicines and other necessa ry objects and the322re
brought by the emissaries of the ‘great land’.” TPFFPT
10.99. These articles are mere confirmation of a situation faced by the Ukrainian
authorities from the very beginning of their activities undertaken on
320
TP PT Article titled “The taming of the serpents”, published by the Ukrainian newspaper
Ukraina Moloda, issue no. 167 (1973) of 12 September 2002; author: M. Axaniuk ( Annex RM
50).
TP1PT Article titled “A patch of Ukraine between sea and sky” , published in the Ukrainian
newspaper Golos Ukraini, issue no. 78 (3078) of 23 April 2003 (Annex RM 51).
178 Serpents’ Island after the dismantlement of the USSR. Thus, already in
1995, Anatoli Murahovski wrote in an article published in Zerkalo
Nedeli:
“The supply of the necessary goods for the islanders has
always been a difficult task. True, before, the main burden
was on the Black See Fleet, the subunits of which
defended the island.
Now, the Ministry of Defence of Ukraine has to bear the
burden, and it lacks the means for the timely assurance of
fuel, potable water, products and other materials, while the
renting of a special barge is too expensive. There is no
stationary quay, and the special barge that served as quay
323
sunk a few years ago.” TPFFPT
10.100. The clear conclusion from all the above is that Serpents’ Island is
incapable of sustaining an economic life of its own.
(3) Ukraine’s recent activities on Serpents’ Island cannot change its
qualification as a rock within the scope of Article 121(3)
10.101. In parallel with the Romanian-Ukr ainian negotiations regarding the
delimitation of the maritime areas of the two countries in the Black Sea,
in which the relevance of Serpents’ Island is of certain importance,
Ukraine engaged in a massive attempt to mask the real nature of this
rock and to create artificial conditions for human survival on it.
10.102. In this respect, the Court’s attention is drawn to the images of Serpents’
324
Islands from the 1931 study TPF PTas well as other images dated prior to
325
1949 (e.g. Figure 21 – page 182 of this Memorial TPF), in comparison
with a recent image reproduced in the following pages ( Figure 22 –
page 183 of this Memorial).
322
TP PT Article titled “I wanted so bad to have a French perfume…and, in a fortnight, I had it,
when they brought the correspondence by helicopter”, published in the Ukrainian newspaper
Fakti, issue of 6 October 2004; author: Aleksandr Levit (Annex RM 66).
323
TP PT Article titled “The Serpents’ Island is the most important island in the Black Sea and it
belongs to Ukraine”, published in the Ukrainian newspaper Zerkalo Nedeli, issue of 19 August
1995; author: A. Murahovski (Annex RM 57).
TP4PRa.Ili.nescu, Insula Şerpilor. Schi ţă monografic ă (Serpents’ Island. Monographic
Study), published in the Analele Dobrogei magazine, “Glasul Bucovinei” Publishing House,
Cernăuţi, 1931 (Annex RM 6).
17910.103. As can be seen from these images , prior to 1949 on Serpents’ Island
there were only the lighthouse, th e huts of the light-keepers and the
soldiers posted on it, as well as the water-collection system already
mentioned. The recent pictures show, further to the already existing
elements, alleys, a pontoon and certai n additional buildings. However,
the general picture remains one of a deserted territory, arid and
inhospitable and without any faci lities to sustain a permanent
community.
10.104. Consequently, this transformation is pure appearance and bears no
relationship to reality.
10.105.In this context, it is worth mentioning that, during the bilateral
Romanian-Ukrainian negotiations, the Romanian side officially
proposed that the expert s of the two Parties should pay a visit to
326
Serpents’ Island, in order to assess in situ its natural characteristics TPFPT
While not directly rejecting this proposition, the Ukrainian side invoked
“technical reasons” and postponed indefinitely the proposed visit TPFF.T
10.106. The process of transformation began when the Ukrainian Council of
Ministers adopted Decision no. 1009, of 18 December 1995, on the
future developing of the infrastruc ture and of the economic life on
Serpents’ Island and Decision no. 1114, of 8 October 1997, on the
modernization of the infrastructure and of economic activity on
Serpents’ Island, establishing a comp lex program for the development
of the infrastructure on Serpents ’ Island. The provisions of these
decisions were furthered by Decision no 713/2002, approving the
Complex Program of Developing the Infrastructure and the carrying out
of the economic activity on the Serpents’ Island. To the Romanian
authorities’ knowledge, the texts of th ese decisions are not public; they
TP5PT See also Maps RM A 12, RM A 13, RM A 14 in the Map Atlas.
326
TP PT Notes verbales no. EVI-1/2803 dated 4 May 2004 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of
Romania to the Embassy of Ukraine in Bucharest ( Annex RM 67) and EVI/204 dated 9 August
2004 of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Romania to the Embassy of Ukraine in Bucharest
(Annex RM 68)
TP7PT Note verbale no. 72/22-446-4290 dated 18 August 2004 of the Ministry of Foreign
Affairs of Ukraine to the Embassy of Romania in Kiev (Annex RM 69)
180 are not in the possession of the Ro manian side. They were, however,
328
mentioned in the Ukrainian media. TPFFPT
10.107.This process of transformation of Serpents’ Island envisages the
carrying out of a complex of measures such as: bringing soil, planting
trees, installing a mobile phone comm unications system, establishing a
postal office, opening a store etc. Although, as reported by the
Ukrainian mass-media, among the 66 inhabitants, there is only one
329
woman TPF, a gynaecological post has been opened.
10.108. In September 2004 (after Romania had seized the Court with the present
case), a branch of the Ukrainian ba nk “Aval” has began to function on
330
Serpents’ Island. TPF FIt is also reported that the Ukrainian authorities
have plans for the construction of ot her buildings (such as a hotel or a
museum).
328
TP PT See articles published in the Odessa-based Odeskie Izvestia, issues no. 171 (2499) of 14
September 2002 (“Serpents’ Island concerns are our concerns”; author: Aleksandr Seryi – Annex
RM 70) and 192 (2766) of 16 October 2003 (“The number of islanders is going to increase”;
author: Vladislav Kitik - Annex RM 56), and Odeskyi Vestnik, issue no. 80 (3337) of 13 April
2005 (“I find myself again at the end of the world”; author: Valentina Surnina –Annex RM 71).
329
TP PT Article titled “I wanted so bad to have a French perfume…and, in a fortnight, I had it,
when they brought the correspondence by helicopter”, published in the Ukrainian newspaper
330ti, issue of 6 October 2004; author: Aleksandr Levit (Annex RM 66).
TP PT Article titled “On the island the weather is fine”, published in the Ukrainian newspaper
Odesskie Izvestia, issue no. 238 (3056) of 14 Decembe r 2004; author: Vladislav Kitic ( Annex
RM 72).
181 Figure 21
1939 Map of Serpents’ Island
Source: Romanian Ministry of National Defense Archives
As it can be seen, the only buildings on Serpents’
Island were the lighthouse and the water-cisterns
(Romanian “Citerna”); in the north-eastern corner,
the position of the ancient ruins (Romanian
“Ruine”) is indicated Figure 22
Recent picture of Serpents’ Island
Source: the picture was taken in the Ukrainian town of Vilkove, on 27 May 2005, from a board featuring
Serpents’ Island, at the Centre for Monitoring of Navigation on the Danube
As is can be seen, in spite of the erection of new buildings, the inhospitable and arid character
of Serpents’ Island, consequently its inappropriateness for human habitation, as well as the
lack of an economic life, are evident10.109. As the Ukrainian press admits, all these activities are extremely costly:
“The main means of transportation remains the helicopter
which, to sustain the activity on the island, makes more
than 60 flights a year. Conse quently, the maintenance of
the island costs more than half a million dollars.
Why does the State consciously admit such expenses, why
has President Leonid Kuchma instructed the heads of the
Ministry of Defence, Foreign Affairs, of State Committees
for Border Guard and Geology to personally evaluate the
interest of the State in this remote, difficult-to-reach
spot?” TPFFPT
10.110.The answer to those questions is clear enough: Ukraine seeks to
artificially transform a barren rock in to an island capable of sustaining
some kind of human habitation and a limited economic life of its own in
order to entitle it to an exclusive economic zone and a continental shelf.
10.111. That aim has been avowed and explained in the Ukrainian press. Thus,
the Ukrainian newspaper Slovo in its edition of 3 May 2002, published
an article entitled “Ukraine decided to withdraw its anti-aircraft defence
from Serpents’ Island”. The content of the article is revealing with
respect to the nature of the activ ities carried out by the Ukrainian
authorities on this maritime feature:
“Ukraine decided to withdraw from Serpents’ Island the
anti-aircraft military company posted there. This
information was provided, on the occasion of a press
conference, by the head of the State Committee for the
defence of the state border, Ni kolai Litvin [...] According
to Litvin, the decision was a dopted within the framework
of the program regarding the de militarization of the island
and the creation of a civilian infrastructure. He expressed
the view that this initiative will consolidate the position of
TPPT Article titled “The Serpents’ Island is the most important island in the Black Sea and it
belongs to Ukraine”, published in the Ukrainian newspaper Zerkalo Nedeli, issue of 19 August
1995; author: A. Murahovski (Annex RM 57). Ukraine in the negotiations with Romania – that is raising
claims with respect to Serpents’ Island.” TPF FPT
10.112. In the same vein, the newspaper Stolichnye Novosti commented, in its
edition of 28 January 2003, that
“it seems that last year Uk raine found an original method
to convince the stubborn Romanians, (a method) which,
we must admit, entails significant financial investments.
Benefiting from a certain passi vity of the Romanian party
in expectance for the NATO summit, Kiev has actively
started to develop Serpents’ Is land so that it could have
more of the attributes of a real island. Thus, at the end of
the year 2002, the Cabinet of Ministers approved the
Program of developing the infrastructure and the economy
on the island and in the surrounding continental shelf, for
the years 2002-2006.
The fulfilment of this program shall transform the island in
a place suitable for human life, conferring to it features
specific for an administrative–territorial unit [...] Probably
the Ukrainian party thinks th at the Romanians, noticing
how fast Serpents’ Island is developing, shall realize that
they were wrong when they named this island, flourishing
and densely populated, a ‘rock’ […]
Ukraine should intensify not only the negotiations with
Romania, but the accomplishment of the Program of
development of the island, so that nobody could doubt that
it is an island and not a rock. Without any doubt, this is an
argument in 333 Ukrainian-Romanian boundary
dispute.” TPFF(emphasis added)
10.113. This enterprise is destined to fail quite apart from its economic un-
sustainability, and this for at least three reasons:
- the changes do not correspond to any reality;
TP2PT Article titled “Ukraine decided to withdraw its anti-aircraft defense from Serpents’
Island” published in the Ukrainian newspaper Slovo, issue no. 18 (491) of 3 May 2002; author:
Viktor Veprik (Annex RM 73).
333
TP PT Article titled “The issue of Serpents’ Island failed once again to be solved”, published in
the Ukrainian newspaper Stolychnie Novosti, issue no. 3 (248) of 28 January 2003; author:
Tatiana Visotzkaia (Annex RM 74).
185 - artificial as they are, they have only occurred after the critical date
when the dispute between the Parties had began and they are self-
serving;
- in any case, even a “transforma tion” of the island such as is
planned is not capable of having any legal effect.
10.114. Like Potemkin villages artificially built in pasteboard in order to create
an illusion of real villages, the semblance of human life maintained on
the rock is the result of artificial conditions created with a view to the
present case. They have not changed the real nature of Serpents’ Island
which has always been, and remains, a rock within the meaning of
Article 121(3): as soon as Ukraine would relax its attempts, the rock
will recover its usual natural state: that of a barren rock incapable of
sustaining human and economic life of its own:
- in the absence of fresh water supplies brought in by boat or
helicopter there would be no water for human consumption;
- in the absence of regular supp lies of food, human survival on
Serpents’ Island would be impossible for any period.
10.115. It is also to be noted that th e two above-mentioned decisions of 1995
and 1997, which initiated the proce ss of the so-called “economic
development” of Serpents’ Island, we re issued and implemented while
the Romanian authorities repeatedly expressed, during the bilateral
negotiations (regarding the 1997 Treat y on Relations), their position
concerning Serpents’ Island’ status as a rock within the meaning of
article 121(3). The Ukrainian authorities were thus well aware of
Romania’s contention that Serpents’ Island is not entitled to continental
shelf and exclusive economic zone.
10.116. Works to artificially transform Serp ents’ Island are st ill being carried
on, notwithstanding th e fact that, on 16 September 2004, Romania
seized the International Court of Ju stice with respect to the delimitation
186 of the maritime spaces of the two St ates in the Black Sea. Thus, in a
revealing article, titled “On the island the weather is fine” published by
the Odesskie Izvestia on 14 December 2004 it is stated that
“The general plan for the deve lopment of Serpents’ Island
has been approved [...] This year a transport line to the
island was opened, using the ship Kasatka, allotted by the
Ministry of Transportation of Ukraine to the State
Regional Administration of Kilia and rented by the
municipality-owned enterprise Ostrovnoe [...] Presently,
the border guards, the pers onnel servicing the lighthouse
and the scientists live permanently on the island […] An
intensive activity is conducted in order to determine the
recognition by the international community of the status of
island for Serpents’ Island . In this respect a project
elaborated following an initiative of the Regional State
Administration and of the National University “I.
Mecinikov”, together with the Ministry for Environmental
Protection of Ukraine, was fo rwarded to the board of the
European Coordinating Committee […] Unfortunately, the
process of transformation of the island could lose
334
momentum because of the lack of financing.” TPFF(emphasis
added)
10.117.Another article publ ished by the daily Vecernia Odessa in its 25
December 2004 edition, shows the extent of the Ukrainian planned
measures in relation to Serpents’ Is land, as well as the difficulties the
Ukrainian authorities are encounter ing due to the objective conditions
existing on Serpents’ Island:
“The new project of the general plan was elaborated by the
Territorial Institute “Odessgradproiect” and approved by a
decision of the State Administ ration of the Kilia District
[....] In the coastal area, they projected the construction of
the facilities for diving activitie s, for fish protection, as
well as the building of the seasonal rescuing services and a
special building for shelteri ng yachts and motor-boats. A
landing stage for small sized ships shall also be built, thus
allowing that small sized yachts and motor-boats come
near the island. The food issu e is also proposed to be
334
TPPT Article titled “On the island the weather is fine”, published in the Ukrainian newspaper
Odesskie Izvestia, issue no. 238 (3056) of 14 Decem ber 2004; author: Vladislav Kitic (Annex
RM 72).
187 solved in a new way. In the jointly managing area, they
envisage the construction of a small bakery, of general
stores [...]
V. Iarovoi mentioned that all of these are based on a very
important factor: in the first stage, the island has to be
consolidated by technical-engi neering works, its seismic
stability has to be ensured a nd the removal of pluvial and
residual waters has to be organised.” TPF FPT
10.118. These activities continued in 2005 as well. Thus, the Ukrainian news
agency MIGnews quoted Mr. Anatoliy Kinah, the first-deputy-prime-
minister of Ukraine, who, on 9 June 2005 stated that
"One of the priority tasks of the Government and of the
State, generally, is to ensu re conditions favourable to
human life and development of human activities on the
island, as well as impl ementation of economic
336
activities." TPF FPT
10.119. All these elements clearly prove an attempt at artificially altering the
natural conditions of Serpents’ Island by seeking to create an appearance
of human habitation and economic life. While not contesting the rights of
any State to implement whatever measures it may find necessary to
develop parts of its territory, Roma nia made clear in several Notes
Verbales addressed to the Ukrainian side that the measures taken on
Serpents’ Island cannot have any legal effect. Moreover, the Romanian
authorities advised the Ukrainian au thorities that such a conduct is
337
inconsistent with the principle of good faith. TPFFPT
10.120. It is generally accepted that any right can be exer cised legitimately if at
least two conditions are met. First, the right has to be exercised in
TP5PT Article titled “Changes are expected to be carried out on Serpents’ Island”, published in
the Ukrainian newspaper Vecherniia Odessa, issue no. 197-198 (8138-8139) of 25 December
2004; author: Natalia Harcenko (Annex RM 75).
TP6PT News titled "The Cabinet of Ministers w ill take care of Serpents' Island" of the
Ukrainian news agency MIGnews, available on Internet at
http://mignews.com.ua/articles/164879.html (Annex RM 76).
188 conformity with its social objec tive, the purpose for which it was
acknowledged. Second, any ri ght is to be exercise d in such a manner as
not to affect the rights of other Stat es. As Kolb wrote in an article in
2000,
“the State achieves its destiny and fulfils its functions in an
autonomy which is only relative, limited by its belonging to a
necessary community, which guarantees this common good
which is the equal respect of rights of everybody” FP38PT
The exercise of rights
“must not be anti-social, meani ng to affect the fundamental
interests of the community on which they depend (or simply
339
those of another subject)” TPF .PT
10.121. Moreover, article 300 of the 1982 UNCLOS provides for the obligation
of the States Parties to the Conve ntion to fulfil in good faith their
obligations and to exercise their rights “in a manner which would not
constitute an abuse of right”. In other words, a State Party to the 1982
UNCLOS cannot exercise it s rights established by the said document so
that it could affect the rights enjoyed by other States Parties.
10.122. In this case, it is cl ear that the objective follo wed by the programme of
development of Serpents’ Island, as stated by the Ukrainian authorities
and media, is not only to artificially create maritime entitlements, but to
create them in the detriment of the entitlements of Romania.
10.123. As D. Bowett mentioned in an article published in 1979,
337
TP PT Notes verbales of the Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Romania to the Embassy of
Ukraine in Bucharest no. C23/2473 dated 25 April 2002 ( Annex RM 77 ), C26/5805 dated 15
338ember 2002 (Annex RM 78) and C26/1794 dated 25 April 2003 (Annex RM 79)
TP PT Robert Kolb, La bonne foi en droit international public , Publications de l’Institut
Universitaire de Hautes Etudes Internationales – Geneva, Presses Universitaires de France, 2000,
339435.
TP PT Robert Kolb, op.cit., p. 436.
189 “The phrase ‘of their own’ [from the Article 121(3) of the
1982 UNCLOS] means that a State cannot avoid a rock being
denied both an exclusive economic zone and a shelf by
injecting an artificial economic life, based on resources from
its other land territory.” TPF FPT
10.124. Even if the need for some external support could probably be accepted,
such aid and support
“must be reasonable under the circumstances; they must not
seem the result of a malicious skill with purposes to divert the
rule on which they are based in relation with their social goal.
This idea has a different name: abuse of right. The limit of the
admissible dependence of an islet will be there where the
undertaken action would seem ab usive, account taken of its
nature aimed at turning th e effects of paragraph 3
(Rechtsumgehung)” TPF .PT
10.125. Thus, the Ukrainian conduct regardi ng Serpents’ Island can be given no
consequence on the issue of the delimitation of the maritime areas in the
Black Sea. Any other approach would contradict the principles embodied
by the 1982 UNCLOS, namely the objective of reaching an equitable
solution for the delimitation. Equity cannot be based on abuse.
10.126. At the same time, the continuous carrying out of these works, as well as
their well recognised objective – to determine Romania and this Court to
consider Serpents’ Island an island entitled to its own exclusive economic
342
zone and continental shelf TPF- represent an indirect, but clear and
eloquent, recognition by Ukraine that Serpents’ Island, according to its
TPPT D. W. Bowett, The Legal regime of Islands in International Law, Oceana Publication/
Sijthoff & Noordhoff, Cobbs Ferry/ Alphen aan den Rijn, 1979, p. 34.
TPPT « […] doivent être raisonnables dans les circonstances; il ne doivent pas paraître
l'Œuvre d'une habileté malicieuse à des fins détournant la règle sur laquelle elle se fondent de
son but social. Cette idée à un autre nom: abus de droit. La limite de la dépendance admissible
d'un îlot sera là où l'action entreprise apparaîtra abusive, vu son caractère destinée à tourner les
effets du paragraphe 3 (Rechtsumgehung )». See R. Kolb, «L'interprétation de l'Article 121,
paragraphe 3, de la Convention de Montego Bay su r le droit de la mer: Les 'rochers qui ne se
prêtent pas à l'habitation humaine ou à une vie économique propre … », A.F.D.I., vol. XL, 1994,
p. 908; see also p. 906.
TPPT It is worth mentioning that, in the bilateral negotiations on the issue of the delimitation
of the maritime areas, the Ukrainian negotiators confirmed this goal of the works carried out on
Serpents’ Island.
190 natural features, falls w ithin the scope of paragraph 3 of Article 121 of
the 1982 UNCLOS – a rock incapable of sustaining human habitation or
economic life of its own.
10.127. Recognition TPF , as a type of unilateral act, could result not only from a
344
declaration, but also from a specific conduct of a State TPF . In this case,
the development plan adopted by the Ukrainian Government was
followed by implementing activities that represent a certain State
conduct. Recognition can be express or implicit TPF PTThis has been
accepted by the Court in its Judgment in the case concerning the Right of
Passage over Indian Territory with regard to the attitude of Great Britain
towards Portugal’s sovereignty:
“The British found the Portuguese in occupation of the
villages and exercising full and exclusive administrative
authority over them. They accepted the situation as they
found it and left the Portuguese in occupation of, and in
exercise of exclusive authority over, the villages. […] The
exclusive authority of the Po rtuguese over the villages was
never brought in question. Thus Portuguese sovereignty over
the villages was recognized by the British in fact and by
implication and was subsequently tacitly recognized by
India” TPF .PT
10.128. Equally,inthe Temple case, the Court found:
“That the Siamese authorities by their conduct
acknowledged the receipt, and r ecognized the character, of
these maps, and what they purported to represent, is shown
TP3PT « Recognition means acknowledgement and acceptation by a State of a fact…» ( “ La
reconnaissance, c’est la constatation et l’acceptation par un Etat d’un état de fait ”…),
Dominique Carreau, Droit International, 8e édition, Pedone, 2004, p. 219
344
TP PT International Law Commission mentioned State conduct as one of the forms of
unilateral acts, together with declarations, proc lamations and notifications, written or oral. See
ILC Report A/52/10, 1997, para. 210; ILC Report A/53/10, 1998, para. 167.
345
TP PT «Often realized by means of an explic it act, it can nonetheless be implied from a
conduct, with the condition that this should be cl early imputable to the competent bodies of the
respective state” “Souvent effectué par voie de déclaration explicite, elle peut néanmoins résulter
d’un comportement à la condition que celui-ci soit clairement imputable aux organes compétents
de l’Etat concerné”, Pierre Marie Dupuy, Droit International Public, 7 PPedition, Dalloz, 2004, p.
346.
TP PT Right of Passage over Indian Territory (Portugal v. India), Judgment, I.C.J. Reports
1960, p. 39.
191 by the action of the Minister of the Interior, Prince Damrong,
in thanking the French Mini ster in Bangkok for the maps,
and in asking him for another fifteen copies of each of them
for transmission to the Siamese provincial Governors” TPF PT
10.129. In the Land and Maritime Boundary case between Cameroon and
Nigeria, the Court accepted the principle of implied recognition or
acknowledgment by implica tion, too. To give an example, it had been
decided that by requesting permissions to enter on the Bakassi Island,
Nigeria clearly accepted the appl ication of the 1913 Anglo-German
Agreement:
“In assessing whether Nigeria, as an independent State,
acknowledged the applicability of the provisions of the
Anglo-German Agreement of 11 March 1913 relating to
Bakassi, the Court has also taken account of certain formal
requests up until the 1980s submitted by the Nigerian
Embassy in Yaoundé, or by the Nigerian consular
authorities, before going to vis it their nationals residing in
Bakassi. This Nigerian acknowledgment of Cameroon
sovereignty is in no way dependent upon proof that any
particular official visit did in fact take place” TPF PT
10.130. The case of the Ukrainian conduct in respect to Serpents’ Island, to the
extent that its purpose consists in seeking to confer on Serpents’ Island an
unjustified entitlement to maritime areas, could be qualified as an
implicit recognition by conduct that without this at tempt Serpents Island
is only a rock, not entitled to a continental shelf or an exclusive economic
zone. As “recognition has the effect to bar its author from subsequently
349
contesting the validity of the s ituation it acknowledges and accepts” TPFPT
the implicit recognition by Ukraine of the status of Serpents’ Island as a
“rock” under the 1982 UNCLOS deprives the activity of any basis. The
conduct of the Ukrainian side shows the lack of trust in the legitimacy of
TP7PT Temple of Preah Vihear (Cambodia v. Thailand) , Merits, Judgment, I.C.J. Reports
3482, p. 24.
TP PT Land and Maritime Boundary between Cameroon and Nigeria (Cameroon v. Nigeria;
Equatorial Guinea intervening), ICJ Reports 2002, judgment of 10 October 2002, para. 216.
349
TP PT « La reconnaissance [a] pour effet d’empêcher celui qui l’émet de contester
ultérieurement la validité de la situation qu’elle a pour objet de constater et d’accepter », Pierre
Marie Dupuy, Droit International Public, 7 e édition, Dalloz, 2004, p 342
192 its own claim for maritime spaces based on the characteristics of the
350
Serpents’ Island TPFF.T
10.131. It may be noted that the USSR, which seized Serpents Island for strategic
reasons, never undertook such development activities, nor did Ukraine,
for a long period of time, until the Ukrainian authorities became aware of
the importance of the issue of the legal status of Serpents’ Island.
(4) Conclusions
10.132. The following general conclusions may be drawn:
- according to its natural characteristics, Serpents’ Island is a rock
unable to support human habitation and an economic life of its own;
- due to its manifest inhabitabilit y, Serpents’ Island has never had –
and it does not have now – a permanent settled population, nor has it
ever sustained an economic life of its own; the few persons posted
there completely depend on external supplies;
- the recent attempts of the Ukra inian authorities to “develop”
Serpents’ Island have no influence on this maritime feature’s lack of
entitlement to exclusive economic zone and continental shelf and
are not opposable to Romania;
- on the other hand, by their declared goals, these attempts represent a
clear recognition of the Ukrainian side that Serpents’ Island is a rock
350
TPPT The conduct of the Ukrainian side also reinforces the opposability to Ukraine of the
“rock” statute of Serpents’ Island - as confirmed by jurisprudence, “[…] instances of State
conduct inconsistent with a given rule should generally have been treated as breaches of that rule,
not as indications of the recognition of a new rule. If a State acts in a way prima facie
incompatible with a recognized rule […] then, whether or not a State conduct is in fact justifiable
on that basis, the significance of that attitude is to confirm rather than to weaken the rule”,
Military and Paramilitary Activities in and against Nicaragua (Nicaragua v. United States of
America), Merits, Judgment, ICJ Reports 1986, p.98 (para. 186).
193 that cannot sustain human habitation and has no economic life of its
own;
- moreover, the Ukrainian attempts aimed at artificially transforming
Serpents’ Island with the purpose of creating an appearance of
habitability and economic life ca nnot represent a basis for any
solution for this case;
- Serpents’ Island has no right to an exclusive economic zone or
continental shelf, which is in conf ormity with its status as a rock
falling within the scope of Article 121(3) of the 1982 UNCLOS and
with the bilateral agreements concluded between Romania and the
USSR starting from 1949.
194 CHAPTER 11
THE MARITIME BOUNDARY ACCORDING TO THE
APPLICABLE LAW
(1) Introduction
11.1. On the basis of the applicable law and agreements subsisting between the
Parties, it is proposed to consider the appropriate course of the maritime
boundary in each of the sectors set out above in Chapter 9.
(2) Sector 1: the boundary between adjacent coasts - from Point F around
Serpents’ Island and to the median line
11.2. Sector 1 is shown in Figure 23 (page 197 of this Memorial).
(a) Introduction: the primacy of agreement in maritime delimitation
11.3. Taking into account relevant existing ag reements, in force between Romania
and Ukraine, that established the firs t part of the maritime boundary between
the two States on the 12 nm arc around Serpents’ Island, the maritime boundary
in Sector 1 needs to be discussed itwo portions: the 12 nm arc surrounding
Serpents’ Island and seawards, beyond this 12 nm arc.
11.4. Turning to the first portion of Sector 1, i.e. that pa rt of Sector 1 where the
maritime boundary continues the 12 nm arc around Serpents’ Island from Point
F, the relevant principle is the primacy of agreements in matters relating to
maritime delimitation, as recognised first in the Truman Proclamation, and asnow embodied in Articles 74(4) and 83(4) of the 1982 UNCLOS. That principle
is applicable in two ways:
• first, the agreements concluded between Romania and the Soviet Union
starting in 1949, which are binding on Ukraine by way of succession,
are dispositive of the maritime bounda ry between the two States around
Serpents’ Island in the form of a 12 nautical mile arc;
• second, the principles contained in the 1997 Additional Agreement are
to be applied as between the Parties in delimiting their respective
entitlements to continental shelf and exclusive economic zones.
196Figure 23
Sector 1 of delimitation (b) The agreed boundary around Serpents’ Island
11.5. As already presented in pa ras. 4.3-4.26 this Memorial, various Romanian-Soviet
agreements (procès verbaux) concluded in 1949, 1954, 1963 and 1974
established that the maritime boundary be tween the two States followed the 12
nm arc around Serpent’s Island.
11.6. On the sketches included in the individua l Procès Verbaux of Border Sign 1439
(beacon), from 1949 TPF1Fand 1974, TPF Fas well as on the map enclosed to the 1949
353
Procès Verbal on the Description of the Border TPFFPthe boundary is clearly drawn
to a point on the 12 nautical mile arc drawn around Serpents’ Island (hereinafter
referred to by Romania as “Point B”). Point B represents the point of intersection
between the arc of circle around Serpents’ Island and th e edge of the sketch or
the map – the point where they terminate.
11.7. Neither the texts of the Procès Verbaux, nor the sketches or the map define Point
B as the final point of the delimita tion boundary between the Romanian and
Soviet maritime areas. On the contrary, both indicate that the boundary continues
on the external limit of the 12 nm arc surrounding Serpents’ Island.
11.8. Moreover, the position of Point B varies if the sketches included in the Procès
Verbaux and the enclosed map are compar ed. Indeed, the coordinates of Point B
can easily be calculated from the sketches and the map.
Point B – according to the map: 45°05'24'' N, 30°02'17'' E;
– according to the sketches: 45°05'35'' N, 30°02'12'' E.
The different positions of Point B, calculated according to documents concluded
at the same time and having the same lega l value, are an additional proof that
Point B was not meant as the final point of the maritime boundary. It simply
represented a point where the sketch and the map terminated.
TP1PT Procès Verbal of Border Sign no. 1439 (beacon ), signed at Bucharest, on 27 September 1949
352nex RM 15).
TP PT Procès Verbal of Border Sign no. 1439 (beacon), signed in Ismail, on 4 September 1974 (Annex
RM 22).
353
TP PT Map RM A 11 in the Map Atlas.11.9. The description of the boundary regulated by the September 1949 Procès Verbal
on the general description of the Romanian-Soviet border and the 1949
individual Procès Verbal of Border Sign 1439 was maintained in the 1963 and
1974 general Procès Verbaux and 1974 Pro cès Verbal of Border Sign no. 1439
(beacon). The only change which occurred was that the term “Soviet marine
boundary zone” used to describe the area around Serpents’ Island, was changed
so as to read “Soviet 12-mile territ orial sea” - in th e 1963 and 1974 general
Procès-Verbaux (but not in the individua l 1974 Procès-Verbal of Border Sign
no. 1439).
11.10. In this context, it should be noted that when the 1963 and 1974 Procès Verbaux
were adopted, the legal re gime of the water areas delimited by the agreed
boundary had changed.
11.11. When the 1949 Procès Verbaux were conc luded Romania claimed a territorial
sea of only 6 nautical miles. Romania first mentioned a 12 nm breadth of its
354
territorial sea in 1951, in the Decree no. 176 of 29 September 1951 TPFPThis was
confirmed by the provisions of the D ecree No. 39 on Regulating the Regime of
the Territorial Waters of the People’ s Republic of Romania of 21 January
1956. TPF5FThis first Romanian legislation dedicated expressly to the legal regime
of its territorial waters was adopted over six years af ter the conclusion of the
1949 Procès Verbal on 27 September 1949.
11.12. The USSR, by contrast, had already esta blished its maritime boundaries out to
areas of 12 nm by a succession of laws, starting with a law adopted in 1909,
356
which established a 12 nm breadth in relation to customs issues TPF PTFurther
regulations in this respect were adopted in 1911 (a law on fishing, dated 29 May
1911, establishing the breadth of the terr itorial sea at 12 nm), 1918 (a decree
dated 15 May 1918 on the establishment of a customs guard), 1921 (a further
decree dated 24 May 1921 reaffirming the provisions of the 1911 law) and 1923
TP4PT Decree No. 176 for the Modification of Articles 4, 120, 159 and 172 from the Decree No. 41 of
14 February 1950 Regarding the Surveillance, Order and Control of Maritime and River Navigation, in
the Official Bulletin of the People’s Republic of Romania no. 98 of 29 September 1951 (Annex RM 80).
TP5PT Decree No. 39 of the Presidium of the Great National Assembly of the People’s Republic of
Romania on Regulating the Regime of the Territorial Waters of the People’s Republic of Romania of 21
January 1956 (Annex RM 81).
199 (a decree dated 7 September 1923 on th e protection of the borders of the
357
USSR) TPF . In 1927, by the Decision of the Central Executive Committee and the
Council of the People’s Commissars of the USSR on Approval of the
Regulation on the Protection of the St ate Border of the USSR, the 12 nm
358
breadth of the territorial sea was further confirmed. TPF FArticle II paragraph 9
letter в) established that TPT
“In order to protect the Stat e border of the USSR, it is
established…
в) on the maritime boundary – the maritime area established
from the maximum low-water line, both in cases of continental
mass and islands, on a breadth of 12 miles, unless provided
359
otherwise by international conventions of the USSR.” TPF FPT
11.13. Point 1439, which constitutes the last poi nt of the Romanian-Soviet maritime
boundary the position of which is precisely defined by geographical coordinates
in the 1949 Procès Verbal and the subsequent agreements, is situated at a
distance of 9.2 nm from the Romanian baselines determined according to the
coastal situation in 1949. Mo reover, Point B is situated at a distance of more
than 12 miles from the 1949 Romanian co ast (taking into account the factual
situation of 1949 TPF PT.
11.14. Accordingly, taking into account the lega l regime of the Romanian and Soviet
territorial seas at the time of conclusi on of the 1949 Procès Verbaux, it is clear
that the maritime boundary defined by them delimited maritime areas subject to
two distinct legal regimes:
• first , it delimited the territorial seas of the two States, from the final
river border point up to a point on the maritime boundary line situated at
a distance of 6 miles (the then-breadth of the Romanian territorial sea)
from the Romanian coast as it was configured in 1949. Romania will
refer to this point as "Point A"; it is located at 45 °09'44''N and
356
TP PT See Pierre Solodovnikov, La Navigation maritime dans la doctrine et la pratique soviétiques ,
Paris, Librairie Générale de Droit et de Jurisprudence, R.Pichin et R.Drand-Auzias, 1980, p. 206
357
358PT Ibid., p. 207-209
TP PT Ibid., p. 209. See also the Decision of the Central Executive Committee and the Council of the
People’s Commissars of the USSR on Approval of the Regulation on the Protection of the State Border of
the USSR of 15 PJune 1927 (Annex RM 82)
TP9PTSee Annex RM 82.
360
TP PT See para. 11.17 of this Chapter.
200 29°53'07''E on the maritime boundary lin e delimited by the 1949 Procès
Verbal;
• second , seawards beyond Point A, through Point 1439 and Point B and
beyond them, it delimited maritime areas with different regimes: on the
one hand, the Soviet marine boundary zone around Serpents’ Island
(later referred to as territorial sea) to the north of the boundary and, on
the other hand, an area appertaining to Romania to the south of the
boundary. From the point of view of the rights enjoyed by Romania, this
area to the south of the boundary corre sponded, at that moment, to what
in modern law is referred to as a contiguous zone , an exclusive
economic zone and a continental shelf – notions that, at that time, were
361
already under debate. TTPFPTT
A presentation of thes e areas is shown in Figure 24 (page 202 of this
Memorial).
11.15. The provisions of Romanian and Soviet legislation in effect in 1949 were clear
and unequivocal and they would have b een known by the signatories of the
1949 Procès Verbaux. Moreover, the issues of the regime of maritime areas
situated beyond the territorial sea were al ready broadly debated at that time, as
the concept of continental shelf had alr eady emerged in international law, and
States had started to claim the exercise of sovereign rights and jurisdiction over
362
extended maritime areas TPF . Thus, taking into account the stage of development
of the international law of that time, the boundary agreed upon in 1949 must
have been intended not only to separate the territories of the two States (i.e.,
their territorial seas), but also mariti me areas situated beyond, where the two
States would exercise cer tain sovereign rights. Th e provisions of the 1949
Procès Verbaux are also clear and unequi vocal in this respect: this boundary is
to follow a rectangular trace between Points 1438 and 1439 through Point A and
then to continue on the 12 nm arc around Serpents’ Island.
TP1PT S ee para. 11.15 of this Chapter. T
TP2PT For instance, the Truman Proclamation was released on 28 September 1945. Other countries had
followed in 1946-1948, such as Mexico, Argen tina, Chile, Peru, Cost a Rica, Ecuador. See Digest of
International Law Volume 4, Department of State Publication 7825, Washington D.C.,1965, pp. 752-764
201 Figure 24
The Maritime Boundary Agreed in 1949
Taking into account the 1949 legal regime, this boundary separated:
- between Points 1438 and A, the territorial seas of Romania and the USSR;
- seawards of Point A, the Soviet territorial sea/“marine boundary zone around Serpents’
Island” and Romanian areas that could now be characterized as EEZ/continental shelf
20211.16. By decrees of 1951 and 1956 Romania extended the 6 nautical mile territorial
sea previously claimed to a 12 nm territorial sea. TPFFPThus, Point A lost its
relevance as the final po int of the maritime boundary separating the territorial
seas of the two States. The final point of this boundary (situated at a 12-mile
distance from the Romanian coas t on the existing boundary under the 1949
Procès Verbal and later instruments) was never established between Romania
and USSR; its position was only finally defined by the Border Regime Treaty of
2003, taking into consideration the present coastal configuration (Point F).
11.17. It is worth mentioning that, according to the coastal configuration of 1949, as
well as of 1963 or of 1974, Point F would ha ve been situated more to the west.
Indeed, the relevant point for establishing the Romani an baselines to measure
the breadth of its te rritorial sea is th e outer end of the Sulina dyke. This dyke
underwent major extension works from th e 1950s until the 1980s ; in present it
364
extends onto the sea approximately 3 km more than in 1949 TPF. Thus, according
to the factual situation of 1949, Point B was situated at a distance of more than
12 miles from the Romanian coast.
11.18. The 1949 delimitation clearly establishe d the trace of the boundary between
Points A, 1439 and B and beyond Point B, on the 12 mile arc around Serpents’
Island. The later changes of the regime of portions of the maritime waters
adjacent to the boundary did not alter th e original intention of the Parties
regarding the course of the delimitation and its significance.
11.19. It must be stressed once more that the 1949 Procès Verbaux referred to the
water area surrounding Serpents’ Island as a “Soviet marine boundary zone”,
and not as the “territorial sea” aro und Serpents’ Island. The reference to a
“territorial sea” in the delimitation docum ents only appeared relatively late in
the day in the 1963 and 1974 general Pro cès Verbaux, and was inconsistent
363
364PT See supra, para. 11.11 of this Chapter.
TP PT See the representation of the dyke in Pilotage Guidelines of the Danube River. Navigational
description of the Danube from the port of Tu rnu Severin to the port of Sulina (km.931-nm 0), published
by the Secretariat of the Danube Commission, Budapest, 1954, sketch at p. 96. with the accompanying individual Procès Verbaux relating to Point 1439 which
they purported to summarise TPF .PT
11.20. The series of agreements over the period 1949-1974 demonstrate that Romania
and the USSR accorded Serpents’ Island only a water area surrounding it
having a breadth of 12 nm, and which had the character of an all-purpose
maritime boundary. Accordingly, there existed a delimitation between Romania
and the USSR around Serpents’ Island to the effect that Serpents’ Island was
limited to a 12 nmzone, and that zones to the south of that boundary appertained
to Romania.
11.21. The undertaking by Ukraine to respect the boundary line in force on 16 June
1990 is fully applicable to all points la id down in the prior agreements. The
obligation applies fully to all poi nts around the 12 mile arc drawn around
Serpents’ Island, including those beyond Points F or B.
11.22. Neither the USSR, nor Ukraine as its successor denied the boundary fixed in the
1949 or that the instruments th at established it were in force in their relations
with Romania. The provisions of t hose instruments were confirmed by the
dispositions of the 1997 Treaty on Relations TPF Fand the Additional
367
Agreement, TPF Fas well as expressly adopted by reference in the 2003 Border
Regime Treaty. TPF FPT
365
TP PT See paras. 4.3-4.26 of this Memorial
TP6PT Art. 2 (1): “The Contracting Parties, in co nformity with the principles and norms of the
international law and the principles of the Helsinki Final Act, reaffirm that the existing border between
them is inviolable…” (see Annex RM 1).
TP7PT Art.1: “The Government of Romania and the Government of Ukraine shall conclude […] a
treaty on the regime of the state border between the two states, on the basis of the principle of succession
of states regarding borders, according to which th e proclamation of the independence of Ukraine does
not affect the existing state-border between Romania and Ukraine, as it was defined and described in the
Treaty of 1961 on the regime of the Romanian-Soviet state border and the appropriate demarcation
documents, valid on 16 July 1990 […]” (see Annex RM 2).
368
TP PT Art.1: “The State Border between Romania an d Ukraine passes on the ground as defined and
described by the Treaty between the Government of the Romanian People’s Republic and the
Government of the Union of the Soviet Socialis t Republics on the Romanian-Soviet State Border th
Regime, Collaboration and Mutual Assistance in Border Matters, signed at Bucharest, on 27 P Pof
February 1961, as well as by all its corresponding demarcation documents, the maps of the State border
between the former Romanian Peop le’s Republic and Union of the Soviet Socialist Republics, the
protocols of border signs with their sketches […]” (see Annex RM 3).
20411.23. The effect of the incorporation of the 1949 Procès-Verbal by the 1961 Border
Regime Treaty, and the adoption of the boundary delimited in that treaty and
the subsequent Procès Verbaux by the 2003 Border Regime Treaty, as well as
the undertaking by the Partie s to respect the pre-ex isting boundaries between
Romania and Ukraine constitutes a recognition that the boundary as first agreed
in 1949 is still in force as between them.
11.24. Moreover, it is commonly accepted th at maritime boundaries are subject to the
principle of stability . Thus, in the Aegean Sea Continental Shelf (Greece v.
Turkey) and the Maritime Delimitation and Terr itorial Questions between
Qatar and Bahrain (Qatar v. Bahrain), this Court affirmed that the
establishment of maritime boundaries i nvolves an element of stability and
permanence and is subject to the ru le excluding boundary agreement from
fundamental change of circumstances, and cannot be put in issue by unilateral
actions of States TPF9.PT
11.25. Ukraine has specifically accepted the prin ciple of stability. Thus, the former
Ukrainian President Mr. Leonid Kuchma conveyed in 2002 to his Romanian
counterpart Mr. Ion Iliescu, that
“any attempt to question at State-level these boundaries [formed
as a consequence of the peaceful resolutions after the Second
World War] makes real the possi bility to undermine the peace
and stability of the European House, the boundaries of which
become transparent, but remain, from the legal point of view,
determined, stable and inviolable” TPF.PT
TP9PT See Prof. Jean-Pierre Queneudec, The General Aspects of Maritime Boundaries , lecture given
on 28 September 2001 at the Genoa Conference – Panel on the Legal Aspects of Maritime Boundaries
370ganized by the Mediterranean Hydrographic Commission).
TP PT Letter of Mr. Leonid Kuchma, president of Ukra ine, addressed to Mr. Ion Iliescu, president of
Romania, on 29 August 2002 (Annex RM 83).
205 (c) Confirmation of the maritime boundary following the 12 nm arc around
Serpents’ Island in official maps produced by the USSR and Ukraine, by Romania
and by third States
11.26. The existence and acceptance of the maritime boundary established in the
vicinity of Serpents’ Island by both Parties as describe d above is confirmed by
various navigation charts issued after 1949 . Thus, official Soviet and later
Ukrainian, as well as Romanian, Bulg arian, French and German navigation
charts, issued at different points in ti me, clearly present the Romanian-Soviet,
and later the Romanian-Ukrainian maritim e boundary in the territorial sea, as
well as in the vicinity of Serpents’ Island extending beyond Point F.
11.27. In all these charts, the boundary is draw n as defined in the 1949 Procès Verbal,
stemming from the final point of the land/river border (Point 1438), following a
straight line until it reaches the 12 nm arc around Serpents’ Island (Point 1439)
and then following the arc around the island.
11.28. These charts clearly draw the boundary beyond Point F, further eastwards on
the 12-mile arc around Serpents’ Island unt il a point situated due east of the
island.
11.29. It is significant that none of these maps shows a Soviet or Ukrainian maritime
boundary extending southwards from the 12 nm arc. They either show no
maritime boundary at all or they sh ow a 12 nm maritime boundary proceeding
eastwards around Serpents’ Island.
11.30. Attached to this Memorial are 23 charts of the north-western part of the Black
Sea or of various sectors of it, issued by official authorities from the USSR (5
charts issued in 1957, 1977, 1982, 1983 and 198 5), Ukraine (3 charts, issued in
2000, 2001 and 2003), Romania (11 char ts issued in 1958, 1959, 1970, 1982,
1985, 1993, 1995, 1997, 2000 and 2003), as well as the Russian Federation (1
206 chart, issued in 1995), Bulgaria (1 chart, issued in 1993), France (1 chart,
issued in 1990) and Germany (1 chart, issued in 1991) TPFF.T
11.31. Of special significance in this regard is one map annexed and forming part of
the Turkey/USSR Continental Shelf Agreement from 1978 TPF PTThis map, based
on a Soviet chart edited in 1977, in addi tion to indicating the course of the
boundary between the Soviet Union and Turkey, clearly shows the
Romanian/Soviet boundary as agreed in 1949, including the 12 nautical mile arc
boundary around Serpents’ Island which continues round the island to almost
due east of it. As this map was registered, together with the said Agreement,
with the Secretariat-General of the United Nations, its provisions and
indications represent the official pos ition of the USSR, of which all United
Nations members have notice.
11.32. The symbols used on these charts to mark the boundary are also of importance.
Either the annexed charts use only one symbol for all boundaries they depict, or
they make use of different symbols in different situations.
11.33. In the first case, the whole trace of the boundary (be it the land, river or
maritime boundary from the last point of the river border passing on the 12-mile
arc around Serpents’ Island and to the fina l point situated on this arc east to
Serpents’ Island) is marked with the sa me symbol; most often, this symbol is
the one used to depict “international maritime boundaries”, as internationally
endorsed by the International Hydrographic Organisation TPF PT
11.34. In the second case, various symbols (as endorsed by the International
Hydrographic Organisation) are used to re flect the differences of legal regime
between various maritime areas. For instance, the Ukrainian chart entitled Black
Sea Western Coast from Odesa to Sulins’ke Mouth , published by the State
TP1PT See Map Atlas annexed to this Memorial (Maps RM A 15 to RM A 42).
372
373PT Map RM A 15 in the Map Atlas.
TP PT See International Hydrographic Organization: Monaco, International Charts Series INT1
Symbols, Abbreviations, Terrms Used on Charts , published by Bundesamt fur Seeschiffahrt und
Hydrographie, Hamburg/Rostock, 1996, p. 51.
207 374
Hydrographic Institution in Kiev, first edition, 2001 TPFFPis significant, as it does
not show only the Romanian-Ukrainian maritime boundary, but also the outer
limit of the territorial sea of Ukrain e. The symbols are unequivocal: for the
maritime Romanian/Ukrainian boundary fr om the river border, on the 12 mile
arc around Serpents’ Island till a point situated east of it, the symbol is the one
used for “international maritime boundaries”; for the outer limit of the territorial
sea, both to the north of Serpents’ Island and for the Ukrainian mainland, the
chart uses a different symbol, the one referring to a “seaward limit of territorial
sea”. A detailed presentation of the area of interest of this chart is reproduced in
Figure 25 (page 209 of this Memorial).
11.35. Some of the charts depict also the State to which the drawn maritime spaces
appertain. An example is the German chart entitled Donaudelta bis Il’i čevsk,
published by the Bundesamt für Seeschiffahrt und Hydrographie in Hamburg,
375
fifth edition, 1991 TPF ; a detailed presentation of the area of interest of this chart
is reproduced in Figure 26 (page 210 of this Memorial).
TP4PT Map RM A 23 in the Map Atlas.
TP5PT Map RM A 41 in the Map Atlas.
208 Figure 25
The 2001 Ukrainian chart titled Black Sea Western Coast from Odesa to Sulins’ke Mouth
(see also Map RM A 23)
The arc around Serpents’ Island uses, for its southern and south-eastern portions, the symbol of
“international maritime boundaries”, while for its northern and north-eastern portions the symbol
of “seaward limit of territorial sea”, as endorsed by the International Hydrographic Organization
(see, in the top right of the sketch, an extract from page 51 of International Charts Series INT1
Symbols, Abbreviations, Terrms Used on Charts, published by Bundesamt fur Seeschiffahrt und
Hydrographie, Hamburg/Rostock, 1996) Figure 26
The 1991 German chart titled Donaudelta bis Il’icevsk, published by the
Bundesamt für Seeschiffahrt und Hydrographie(see also Map RM A 41)
There are clear indications as to the appurtenance of the maritime areas surrounding
Serpents’ Island11.36. Also attached to this Memorial are o fficial Ukrainian documents regarding the
recent Ukrainian demarches of opening a navigational canal in the Danube
delta, edited by the Ministry of Tran sport and Communication of Ukraine in
2004 and 2005 and containing the official Ukrainian presentation of the
376
controversial project of building a Danube-Black Sea deep navigation canal. TPF FPT
Hard copies and electronic versions of this presentation were distributed by
377 378
Ukrainian representatives on various occasions in 2004 TPF Fand in 2005. TPF FPT
11.37. The document contains, among other images, copies of a map of the area of the
Danube delta, which (under the superim posed text boxes), shows the maritime
boundary between the two States. The map has been extracted from the
electronic presentation, and is presen ted separately with and without the
obscuring text boxes in Figure 27 (page 212 of this Memorial). Although the
map is on a relatively small scale it is cl ear that the boundary is as described in
the 1949 Procès Verbal and presented by th e other charts, and is indicated as
extending to a point on the 12 mile arc due east of Serpents’ Island.
376
TP PT Brochures Creation of the deep-water navigational canal Danube–Black Sea in the Ukrainian
part of delta of the river Danube , Ministry of Transport and Communication of Ukraine, 2004, p. 11
(Annex RM 84) and Revival of Danube-Black sea deep-water navigational channel on Ukrainian part
of delta, Ministry of Transport and Communication of Ukraine, April 2005, p. 33 ( Annex RM 85). See
also the International Commission for the Protection of the Danube River site, at
http://www.icpdr.org/pls/danubis/danubis_db.dyn_navigator.show , information on Bystroe, under the
chapter Mission Report – Ukrainian presentation. The reference to these documents in this Memorial
does not represent any endorsement by the Romanian Government regarding their contents on the
developments related to the Bystroe issue.
377 nd
T2 the.g. P PStanding Working Group of the International Commission for the Protection of the
Danube River – Vienna, 16-17 September 2004, the International Ad-hoc Meeting Regarding the Bystroe
Canal - Geneva, 21 September 2004, the Meeting of the UNESCO Man and Biosphere Program Bureau
th
– Paris, 25-29 October 2004, the 24 PPMeeting of the Standing Committee of the Bern Convention on the
Conservation of Wildlife and Natural Habitats – Strasbourg, 29 November - 3 December 2004
378
TP PT e.g. the informal meeting of the heads of delegations participating to the process of revision of
the 1948 Belgrade Convention on the regime of navigation on the Danube – Kiev, 3-4 March 2005, the
International Scientific–Practical Seminar entitled “I nternational examination of monitoring results of
realization of the first stage of the «Danube - Black Sea» Deep-Water Navigation Way and influence of
other types of economic activity on natural complexes of Danube Delta” – Odessa, 27-28 April 2005. У К Р А И Н А Соединительный канал/Connecting
channel
U K R A I N E Длина(L)= 2 km, Ширина(W(min.)) – 40
m, Глубина(D) – 3,5 m
Дата ввода в эксплуатацию – 1958 р.
Гирло БЫСТРОЕ/Mouth Bystroye
Длина(L) -3 кm, ширина (W) суд. хода –
60 m, глубина (D) – 8,4 m,проектируется
Канал СУЛИНСКОЕ ГИРЛО/ Channel
Sulina, длина (L)– 79,6 кm, ширина (W)
суд. хода – 60 m, глубина (D) – 7,3 m, дата
ввода в эксплуатацию – 1858 р.
Р У М Ы Н И Я
Канал ГЕОРГИЕВСКОЕ ГИРЛО/
R O M A N I A Channel is Sfantu Georghe, длина (L) – 104,6
кm, ширина(W) суд. хода – 50-80 m, глубина
(D)– 2,5-8,0 m, дата ввода в эксплуатацию –
Канал МЕДЖИДИЯ – НОВОДАРИ строится
/ Medgidiya –Novodari Channel, длина (L) – 26
кm, ширина(W) ( по дну ) – 80 m, глубина (D) – 7m,
дата ввода в эксплуатацию – 1988 р.
Канал ЧЕРНОВОДА – КОНСТАНЦА/
Chernovoda –ConstantsaChannel (с двумя
– 80 m, глубина (D) – 7 m, дата ввода в по дну )
эксплуатацию – 1984 р.7 m, дата ввода в
У К Р А И Н А
U K R A I N E
Р У М Ы Н И Я
R O M A N I A
Figure 27
Map of the Danube Mouths Region
Extracted from the electronic presentations on the "Creation of the deep-water
navigational canal Danube- Black Sea" (edited by the Ministry of Transport and
Communication of Ukraine), presented withand without the text boxes; the maritime
boundary around Serpents’ Island is clearly visible11.38. Also annexed to this Memorial is a brochure edited in 2004 by the Ukrainian
State-owned enterprise Ukrmorcartogr aphia. The brochure exhibits three
different images of a chart of the Black Sea produced by the enterprise, the first
one clearly indicating the course of the maritime boundary between Romania
379
and Ukraine in the vicinity of Serpents’ Island. TPFFIt is highly significant that the
brochure itself specifies (in English in the original text) that
“Ukrmorcartographia …had been established December 2, 1996 by
Order over National Agency of Marine Research and Technologies
and is the only specialized and aut horized enterprise in State, the
main goal of which is fulfilment of State tasks on production of
nautical charts…” TPF FPT
(d) Agreement as to the applicability of Article 121(3) of the 1982 UNCLOS
(Paragraph 4 (a) of the Additional Agreement)
11.39. Irrespective of the course of agreement which exists and delimits the maritime
boundary around Serpents’ Island, Ukraine has in any case recognised that
Serpents’ Island should be limited to a 12 nm arc around Serpents’ Island.
11.40. The relevant principle here is that cont ained in Article 4 a) of the Additional
Agreement, reflecting Article 121(3) of the 1982 UNCLOS. In accordance with
these agreements, Serpents’ Island is a rock which cannot sustain human
habitation or economic life of its own.
11.41. Accordingly, it has no continental shelf or exclusive economic zone of its own,
and it is not to be taken into account for the purposes of drawing the provisional
equidistance line. Instead, it is restrict ed to the 12 nm semi-enclave, which it
already possessed under the various agr eements defining the border binding on
Ukraine and which Ukraine expressly undertook to respect.
379
380PBroc(hure Annex RM 86), p. 20.
TP PT Brochure (Annex RM 86), p. 1.11.42. As underlined already, the choice of this principle as the first to be identified in
paragraph 4 of the Additional Agreement has particular significance. Evidently
the Parties were well aware of the impor tance of the issue in the delimitation,
which is obvious, considering the small size of Serpents’ Island and its location
immediately off the Danube delta, very close to the terminus of the land
boundary. Paragraph 4 (a) of the Additional Agreement put beyond question the
direct relevance of Article 121(3) to Serpents’ Island.
11.43. Detailed factual information about Serpen ts’ Island is set out above in Chapter
10. From this information it emerges that Serpents’ Island:
(1) is a rocky formation;
(2) is devoid of water sources other than rainfall, and virtually devoid of soil
and vegetation;
(3) is incapable of sustaining human life on its own;
(4) is incapable of generating any economic life of its own.
11.44. Thus, independently of any ag reement between the Parties (and a fortiori when
the actual agreements are taken into acc ount) it is clear that Serpents’ Island
falls within the meaning of Arti cle 121(3) of the 1982 UNCLOS, and
accordingly it does not generate a continental shelf or exclusive economic zone.
(e) The maritime boundary around Serpents’ Island would be the same independent
of any agreement between the Parties
11.45. The equitable character of the ma ritime boundary around Serpents’ Island, as
contended for in the previous sections, is confirmed by the fact that even if no
account were taken of the series of agreements binding on Romania and
Ukraine, the solution adopted pursu ant to Articles 74 and 83 of the 1982
UNCLOS would be the same.
11.46. Even if ( quod non) one were to disregard the various agreements between the
Parties in relation to the 12 nauti cal mile arc beyond Point F or the 1997
Additional Agreement, the maritime boundary would fall to be delimited on the
214 basis of the equidistance–special circumstances rule.
11.47. As set out in Chapter 8 above, intern ational jurisprudence and State practice
indicates that the presence of small maritime features, close to the mainland
coast of another State clearly constitu tes only a special circumstance justifying
the shifting of the provisional equidistance line.
11.48. In many cases, the equitable solution may require that a tiny maritime feature is
restricted to a maximum 12 nautical mile territorial sea, and that otherwise it is
given no effect in shifting the equidistan ce line. Indeed this solution has been
adopted for islands much more significan t that Serpents’ Isla nd, as well as for
much larger features that do not literally constitute “rocks” TPF.PT
11.49. Given the close proximity of Serpents’ Island to the adjacent coasts of Romania
and Ukraine, as well as its status of a rock falling under the provisions of
Article 121(3), it is appropriate to give Serpents’ Island no weight at all in
delimiting the continental shelf and excl usive economic zones of Romania and
Ukraine. This means that the only effect for Serpents’ Island is restricted to a 12
nm semi-enclave.
11.50.This result is exac tly the same as if effect is given to the agreements between
the Parties as to the course of the ma ritime boundary on the 12 mile arc around
Serpents’ Island, or if Se rpents’ Island is treated under the provisions of the
Additional Agreement, as an Article 121(3) rock generating no continental shelf
or exclusive economic zone.
(f) The point of departure of the maritime boundary from the 12 nm arc around
Serpents' Island
11.51. According to the 1949 Procès Verbaux, the maritime boundary was defined as
running from Point 1439 around the 12 nm arc surrounding Serpents’ Island to a
point undefined, in the text, by geographical coordinates.
381
TPPT See paras. 8.86-8.123 of this Memorial.
21511.52. Nor did the subsequent boundary agreem ents concluded between Romania and
the Soviet Union identify this point by geographical coordinates. The last point
appearing in the sketches or on the maps included in these agreements – Point B
– was not meant to represent the fi nal point of the boundary. It merely
represented the point where these sketches and maps terminated.
382
11.53. However, all the charts TPF issued at different points in time by the Soviet Union,
Ukraine, Romania and other third States which show the complete boundary on
the 12 nm arc around Serpents’ Island draw this arc up to a certain point. Unlike
the sketches and the maps included in, or attached to, the Romanian-Soviet
Procès Verbaux, which draw the boundary on the arc only up to Point B, as this
point practically represents the end of those sketches/maps, the final point of the
boundary presented on these charts is situ ated due east of Se rpents’ Island and
its position is not conditioned by any factor such as the end of the map.
11.54. Nevertheless, all these charts are co nsistent in ending the maritime boundary in
a point situated on the 12 nm arc surrounding Serpents Island situated east of it.
The position of this point (defined in geographical co-ordinates) coincides on all
these charts. It is situated at approximately 45 °14'20''N, 30°29'12''E. Romania
will refer hereafter to this point as "Point X".
11.55. This final point of the maritime boundary – Point X – is shown in the same
location by Romanian and Soviet char ts drafted starting in 1951, immediately
after the conclusion of the 1949 Procès Verbal. Consequently, these charts
present concordant Romanian and S oviet positions, reflecting, without any
doubt, the sense of the agreement concluded in 1949 and subsequently
confirmed several times - which is also confirmed by the charts issued by third
States.
11.56. The Soviet map annexed to the Turk ey/USSR Continental Shelf Agreement
from 1978 TPF3PTregistered with the United Nati ons Secretariat, precisely draws
the Romanian/Soviet maritime boundary up to the same Point X. Thus, Point X
TP2PT See Maps RM A 15 – RM A 42 in the Map Atlas.
TP3PT Map RM A 15 in the Map Atlas.
216 is contained in an international treaty duly registered with the United Nations.
11.57. In conclusion, the point of departure of the Romanian/Ukrainian maritime
boundary from the 12 mile arc around Serpen ts’ Island, is Point X, situated due
east of the island, at approximately 45 °14'20''N, 30 °29'12''E. This point is
represented in the same location on all charts which draw the maritime
boundary in the neighbourhood of Serpents’ Island.
(g) The course of the boundary beyond Point X
11.58. Beyond Point X, the maritime boundary was never delimited between Romania
and the USSR or Ukraine.
11.59. This is not the first time that this Court finds itself in a situation when a segment
of a maritime boundary was established by agreement, while itself was called to
rule on the delimitation of the areas situated beyond that segment.
11.60. The Case on Land and Maritime Boundary between Cameroon and Nigeria
(Cameroon v. Nigeria) dealt with a comparable s ituation. The first portion of
the maritime boundary between the two States (from the last point of the land
border to the so-called "Point G") was es tablished by a bilateral agreement, the
Maroua Declaration, which the Court found valid. However, the outer segment
of the boundary (beyond Point G) had not been established by the two States,
thus the Court proceeded to applyi ng the equitable principles/relevant
circumstances method in order to conduct the delimitation of the maritime areas
beyond point G.
11.61. As Point G did not lie on the equidistance line between the two States, the Court
decided that “Cameroon [wa]s therefore entitled to request that from point G the
boundary of the Parties’ respective maritime areas should return to the
equidistance line.” The Court went furt her and decided that “from point G the
delimitation line should directly join th e equidistance line at a point…called
217 384
point X.” TPFFPT
11.62. The situation in this case is similar: the maritime boundary delimiting the
maritime seas of the two States, as we ll as the initial segment of the boundary
separating the Romanian exclusive econom ic zone and continental shelf from
the Ukrainian territorial waters around Serpents’ Island between Points F and X
were established by bilateral agreements . However, the other segments of the
delimitation line were not established by the two States. Thus, the proper way
for the Court to conduct the delimitation of the maritime areas of Romania and
Ukraine in Sector 1 is, first, to confirm the boundary between Point F and X, as
established by agreement, second, to un ite Point X with th e equidistance line
and third, to follow the equidistance lin e between the mainland adjacent coasts
of the two States.
11.63. The line equidistant between the adj acent Romanian and Ukrainian relevant
coasts is shown in Figure 28 (page 219 of this Memorial).
11.64. To calculate the position of this line, Romania used the nearest points situated
on the baselines of the relevant coasts of the two States, as previously defined in
Chapter 9 of this Memorial.
TP4PT Land and Maritime Boundary between Cameroon and Nigeria (Cameroon v. Nigeria;
Equatorial Guinea intervening), ICJ Reports 2002, judgment of 10 October 2002 (para. 307).
218Figure 28
Romanian and Ukrainian coasts
The equidistant line between the adjacent relevant11.65. Thus, on the Romanian coast only one point is relevant to construct the
equidistance line: the outer (exter nal) end of the Sulina dyke (45 °08'42''N,
29°46'20''E).
11.66. On the other hand, on the Ukrainian coast, the following points are relevant and
most advantageous for the Uk rainian side: Cape Kubansky (45°19'31''N,
29°45'58''E), as well as any points situat ed on the line uniting Cape Kubansky
with Point 1438, and Cape Burnas (45°50'40''N, 30°12'00''E).
11.67. From the coasts up to a point that Romania will refer to as "Point D", the
equidistance line is governed by the outer (external) end of the Sulina dyke and,
respectively, by Cape Kubansky; after Point D to the intersection with the line
median between the Romanian and Ukrainian opposite coasts (Point T), the
equidistance line is governed by the outer end of the Sulina dyke and,
respectively, by Cape Burnas.
11.68. As it can be seen from Figure 28, Point X is not situated on the equidistance
line, but about 2.5 nautical miles on the arc, to the north. Thus, in the absence of
any other relevant circumstance, from Point X the boundary should return to
equidistance. Under normal circumstances , this would consist in drawing a
perpendicular line from Point X direct to the equidistance line – at a point that
will be referred to as "Point Y 1" – see Figure 29 (page 222 of this Memorial).
11.69. This approach would be consistent w ith the solution chosen by this Court in
385
Land and Maritime Boundary between Cameroon and Nigeria TPF. Butsucha
solution would involve awarding Romania a sliver of maritime area only about
1.5 km², pinned between the maritime areas of Ukraine. This would represent a
departure from the will of the Parties, who evidently attached importance to
Point X, which was drawn in the same location practically on every chart issued
by them or by third parties. Since the very purpose of establishing the exclusive
economic zone and the continental shelf is to permit the access to, and the
sustainable exploitation by a State of, resources in t hose areas, this approach
would be a departure from equity as well: there is no point in a maritime delimitation which creates maritime zones which are practically neutralized.
11.70.For these reasons, to connect Point X directly with the equidistance line
between the Romanian and Ukrainian adjacent coasts does not lead to an
equitable solution and should be rejected.
11.71. The appropriate and equitable method is to join Point X with the point on the
equidistance line between the Romanian and Ukrainian adjacent coasts
representing approximately the middle of the segment linking the point of
intersection of the equidi stance line with th e arc around Serpents’ Island, and
Points D and T; this point coincides with the point where the equidistance line
intersects the line uniting Point X and Point T. Romania will refer to this point
as "Point Y". The position of Point Y is 45°11'59''N, 30°49'16''E. It is shown on
Figure 29 (page 222 of this Memorial).
11.72. This solution would lead to the allo cation to Romania of a maritime area of
about 68 km². This roughly equals the area lost by Romania because of the
unjustified departure from equidistance when delimiting the territorial seas
between Romania and the USSR, a factor which should be kept in mind when
considering the overall equity of the solution adopted.
11.73. Apart from the presence of Serpents’ Island and the position of the maritime
boundary around it established by the Roma nian/Soviet Procès Verbaux, in
Sector 1 there is no othe r relevant/special circumstance to be considered TPFF.T
Consequently, from Point Y, the ma ritime boundary should follow the line
equidistant between the adjacent Romanian and Ukrainian coasts.
385
TP PT See paras. 11.60-11.61 of this Chapter.
TP6PT The general circumstance represented by the ge ographical configuration of the Black Sea also
applies to the whole delimitation area and is to be taken into account consequently – see paras. 6.21-6.34
and 8.124-8.125 of this Memorial.
221Figure 29
and the equidistant line
The trace of the maritime boundary between Point X (h) The course of the boundary in Sector 1
11.74. For these reasons, the maritime boundary between the continental shelf and the
exclusive economic zones of Romania and Ukraine runs in Sector 1 from Point
F (45°05'21''N, 30°02'27''E, being the junction of the territorial seas of Romania
and Ukraine, as agreed in 2003), along the segment of arc having a radius of 12
nm drawn from Serpents’ Island, up to Point X (of 45 °14'20''N, 30°29'12''E).
From Point X, the boundary joins the equidistance line based on the adjacent
coasts of Ukraine and Romania at Point Y (of 45 °11'59''N, 30°49'16''E). The
boundary is then constructed as the equidistance line, going through Point D (of
45°12'10''N, 30 °59'46''E) up to Point T (the turning point, of 45 °09'45''N,
31°08'40''E).
11.75. The boundary in Sector 1 is shown in Figure 30 (page 224 of this Memorial).Figure 30
The course of the maritime boundary in Sector 1
equidistance line at Point Y; beyond Point Y to Point T, it follows the equidistance line
From Point F to Point X, it follows the 12-nm arc around Serpents’ Island; then it joins the(3) Sector 2: The boundary between opposite coasts (Romania/Crimean Peninsula)
11.76. The boundary in Sector 2 begins at the point wher e the equidistance line
between the adjacent mainland coasts of the Parties meets the opposite coast
median line between Romania and the Crim ean Peninsula. Sector 2 covers the
area for delimitation in a southwards direction until it meets maritime zones
appertaining to other States bordering on the Black Sea (see Figure 31 – page
226 of this Memorial).
(a) The provisional median line in Sector 2
11.77. It is first appropriate to determine the location of the provisional median line
between the opposite coasts. The median line is to be cons tructed taking into
account the nearest points situated on the baselines of th e relevant coasts of the
two States, as previously defined.
11.78. As far as the Romanian side is concer ned, due to the geogra phical situation of
the relevant Romanian coast, only two points are relevant to establish the
median line:
- the outer (eastern) end of the Sulina dyke (45°08'42"N, 29°46'20''E);
- the south-eastern end of the Sacalin Peninsula (44°47'21"N, 29°32'55"E).
11.79. As to the Ukrainian side, the following points situated on the Crimean coast are
applicable:
- Cape Tarkhankut (45°20'50"N, 32°29'43"E);
- Cape Khersones (44°35'04"N, 33°22'48"E). Figure 31
Sector 2 of delimitation11.80. On this basis, the median line between the opposite coasts is the line joining the
points defined by the following geographical coordinates:
- Point T of 45 °09'45''N, 31°08'40''E (which is also e quidistant to the adjacent
Romanian and Ukrainian coasts);
- the point of 44°35'00"N, 31°13'43"E;
- the point of 44°04'05"N, 31°24'40"E;
- the point of 43°26'50"N, 31°20'10"E.
11.81. The final defined point is referred to by Romania as "Point Z". As Point Z
coincides practically with Point L from the Soviet/Turkish Agreement TPF Fand
388
Point 10 from the Bulgarian/Turkish Agreement TPF, its final location should be
established by negotiations with third c ountries (namely Turkey). However, as
Point Z is practically the point equidistant to the Romanian, Ukrainian and
Turkish coasts, and is farther to the Bulgarian coast, drawing the
Romanian/Ukrainian maritime boundary up to Point Z does not affect the
entitlements to maritime areas of third countries.
11.82. The provisional median line is depicted on Figure 32 (page 228 of this
Memorial).
387
TP PT See para. 6.9 of Chapter 6 of this Memorial.
TP8PT See para. 6.16 of Chapter 6 of this Memorial. Figure 32
The median line between the
relevant Romanian and
Ukrainian opposite coasts (b) The location of Point T - the turning point between Sector 1 and Sector 2
11.83. Point T is the point of intersection of the line equidistant to the Romanian and
Ukrainian relevant adjacent costs and the line median between the Romanian
and Ukrainian relevant opposite coasts . Its geographical coordinates are
45°09'45''N, 31°08'40''E.
(c) Identifying relevant/special circumstances in Sector 2
389
11.84.There is no relevant/special ci rcumstance discernible in Sector 2 TPF. The
opposite coastlines are broadly equal to each other and present no special
features.
(d) The course of the boundary in Sector 2
11.85. For these reasons, there is no basis for departing fr om the provisional median
line in Sector 2. The maritime boundary in Sector 2 is depicted on Figure 33
(page 230 of this Memorial).
389
TP PT The general circumstance represented by the geographical configuration of the Black Sea
applies to the whole delimitation area – see paras. 6.21-6.34 and 8.124-8.125 of this Memorial. Figure 33
The course of the maritime
boundary in Sector 2(4) The maritime boundary between the exclusive economic zones and the
continental shelf of Romania and Ukraine in the Black Sea
11.86.Taking into account all the above, the maritime boundary between the
exclusive economic zones and the contin ental shelf of Romania and Ukraine
in the Black Sea should have the following course:
from Point F, at 45 °05'21''N, 30 °02'27''E, on the 12 nm arc
surrounding Serpents’ Island, to Point X, at 45 °14'20''N,
30 °29'12''E,
from Point X in a straight segment to Point Y, at 45 °11'59''N,
30 °49'16''E,
then on the line equidistant between the Romanian and Ukrainian
adjacent coasts, from Point Y to Point T, at 45 °09'45''N,
31 °08'40''E,
and then on the line median between the Romanian and Ukrainian
opposite coasts, from Point T to Point Z, at 43 °26'50''N,
31 °20'10''E.
11.87. The boundary is shown in Figure 34, at page 232 of this Memorial.
231 Figure 34
The maritime boundary between the exclusive
economic zones and the continental shelf of
Romania and Ukraine in the Black Sea
232 CHAPTER 12
EQUITABLENESS OF THE DELIMITATION LINE
(1) Introduction
12.1. As already explained, it has become usual that the equitableness of a maritime
delimitation be tested using the so-calle d “proportionality test”. The aspects
regarding proportionality were dealt w ith in detail in paras. 8.58-8.70 of
Chapter 8 of this Memorial.
12.2. As well, an equitable delimitation should not encroach upon (should not cut-
off) the maritime entitlements of neither of the parties to the delimitation and
should not affect their security interests.
(2) The proportionality test
12.3. The proportionality test, as applied in various processes of delimitation by this
Court or different arbitral tribunals, supposes the comparison between the ratio
of the lengths of the coasts relevant for the delimitation and the ratio of the
water areas accorded to the two partie s by the equidistant/median line as
shifted after the consideration of the relevant circumstances.
12.4. While analyzing the application of th e provisions of article 4(b) of the
Additional Agreement, Romania identified the relevant area for delimitation
(see paras. 9.26-9.29 of Chapter 9 of this Memorial); it has a surface area of
2
86,095.3 km P.
12.5. The water areas from the delimita tion area allocated to Romania and,
respectively, Ukraine by the equidistant/median line, as shifted to consider the
presence of Serpents’ Island and its 12 nm surrounding circle, have the
2 2
following sizes: Romania 31,542.8 km P, Ukraine 54,552.5 km P, the ratio being
Romania: Ukraine 1:1.729.
23312.6. In paras. 9.24-9.25 of this Memorial the lengths of the releva nt coasts of the
two States (and their baselines) were determined. These are:
Romanian relevant coasts: 269.67 km (baselines: 204.90 km);
Ukrainian relevant coasts: 388.14 km (baselines: 292.63 km).
12.7. Consequently, the ratio is Romania: Ukraine 1: 1.439. If the baselines of the
relevant coasts are considered, the ratio becomes Romania: Ukraine 1: 1.428.
12.8. After comparing the ratios between the lengths of th e relevant coasts of the
two States/their baselines and the water areas allocated to them by the
equidistant/median line as modified to take into account the 12 nm arc around
Serpents’ Island, it is noticeable that they are comparable (they produce only a
slight advantage in favour of Ukraine). Thus, there is no reason to further shift
the delimitation line.
(3) The principle of no cut-off
12.9. The principle according to which “cut-o ff” or encroachment on the maritime
zone areas of other States is to be avoided as far as possible is well established
in international jurisprudence. Thus, the Court in the North Sea Continental
Shelf case observed that:
“the continental shelf of any State must be the natural
prolongation of its land territory and must not encroach upon
what is the natural prolongation of the territory of another
State.” TPFFPT
Similarly, the relevant paragraph of the dispositif provided:
“delimitation is to be effected by agreement in accordance with
equitable principles, and taking account of all the relevant
circumstances, in such a way as to leave as much as possible to
each Party all those parts of the continental shelf that constitute
a natural prolongation of its la nd territory into and under the
390
TPPT ICJ Reports 1969, p. 47 (para. 85).
234 sea, without encroachment on the natural prolongation of the
391
land territory of the other” TPF FPT
12.10. In the St Pierre et Miquelon case, the Court of Arbitr ation, having discussed
the jurisprudence of the Court, endorsed the Canadi an formulation of the
principle in the following terms:
“the delimitation must leave to a State the areas that constitute
the natural prolongation or seawar d extension of its coasts, so
that the delimitation must avoid any cut-off effect of those
392
prolongations or seaward extensions” TPF FPT
12.11. The Court in the Libya/Malta case described the question of cut-off, included
in its list of the “well- known examples” of the a pplication of “equitable
principles”, in the following terms:
“the principle of non-encroachment by one party on the natural
prolongation of the other, which is no more than the negative
expression of the positive rule that the coastal State enjoys
sovereign rights over th e continental shelf off its coasts to the
full extent authorized by international law in the relevant
393
circumstances” TPF FPT
12.12. Romania also had a constant position regarding the necessity that any
maritime delimitation should lead to no cut--off. Thus, in the course of the
negotiations of the 1982 UNCLOS, while submitting various proposals
regarding the role of islands in delimitation, Ro mania also referred to the
principle of no cut-off, stating that its proposals were intended to
“prevent any State from encroaching on the maritime zones of
another State by invoking the ex istence of uninhabited islands
394
in the delimitation area” TPF FPT
TP1PT ICJ Reports 1969, p. 53, (para. 101(C)(1)).
392
TP PT International Legal Materials, vol. 31, p. 1145, at p. 1167, para. 58.
TP3PT Continental Shelf (Libyan Arab Jamahiriya/Malta), Judgment, ICJ Reports 1985 , p. 39 (para.
46)
TP4PT 169 PPPlenary Meeting (1982), para 53, XVI Official Records, 97. See also para. 8.13 of this
Memorial.
23512.13. In the present case, the maritime boundary as described in Chapter 11 does not
cut-off the entitlements to continental shelf and exclusive economic zones of
either Romania or Ukraine. The area attributed to each party does not
encroach on the natural prolongation of the other.
(4) The necessity to protect security interests of States
12.14. Another factor relevant to maritime de limitations is the necessity that the
maritime boundary not imperil on the security interests of any of the parties.
As the Chamber said in the Gulf of Maine case:
“It is… evident that the respectiv e scale of activities connected
with fishing – or navigation, defence or, for that matter,
petroleum exploration and exploi tation – cannot be taken into
account as a relevant circumstance or, if the term is preferred,
as an equitable criterion to be applied in determining the
delimitation line. What the Chamber would regard as a
legitimate scruple lies rather in concern lest the overall result,
even though achieved through th e application of equitable
criteria and the use of appropr iate methods for giving them
concrete effect, should unexpected ly be revealed as radically
inequitable, that is to say, as likely to entail catastrophic
consequences for the livelihood and economic wel395eing of the
population of the countries concerned.” TPF FPT
12.15. A similar approach was taken in the Jan Mayen case, when the Court,
referring to the Chamber’s dictum in the Gulf of Maine case, decided to
“consider whether any shifting or adjustment of the median
line, as fishery zone boundary, would be required to ensure
396
equitable access to the capelin fishery resources […]” TPFPT
12.16. The Gulf of Maine and Jan Mayen cases concerned issues of economic
security and access to resources which ha d traditionally been used by relevant
populations. But the categories of “catastrophic consequences” are not
exhausted, and the principle would be triggered, for example, by a proposal
for zones of sovereign rights of one Stat e directly in front of the adjacent
coastal State.
395
TPPT ICJ Reports 1984, p. 342 (para 237).
23612.17. In the present case, the maritime boundary as defined in Chapter 11 of this
Memorial ensures the access of both Parties to the resources of the
delimitation area. Consequen tly, it does not affect the security interest of
neither of the two States.
12.18. In this context, it is worth mentioning that the security in terests of Romania
were already affected by the establis hment of the maritime boundary between
Romania and the USSR in the territoria l sea and in the area around Serpents’
Island, by the 1949 Procès Verbal a nd the subsequent Romanian-Soviet
documents. As already mentioned, this maritime boundary reduced the size of
the Romanian territorial sea facing Serpents’ Island with approximately 70
2
km Pand thus encroached upon the Romanian maritime entitlements in that
area. By its trace and its proximity to the Romanian coast, the boundary
embarrasses the exercise of Romanian act ivities in areas situated immediately
in front of the Romanian shore. A llocating further maritime entitlements to
Serpents’ Island could extend the cons equences of the already existing
inequitable situation and would furthe r affect, in this way, the legitimate
security interests of the Romanian State.
12.19. Taking into account all the above, the delim itation identified in this Memorial
leads to an equitable solution, in accor dance with the applicable law between
the two parties, and especially the prin ciples under the Additional Agreement,
as well as under Articles 74 and 83 of the 1982 UNCLOS.
TPPT Maritime Delimitation in the Area between Greenland and Jan Mayen (Denmark v. Norway),
Judgment, ICJ Reports 1993, pp. 71-72 (para. 75).
237 397
S UMMARY OF CONCLUSIONS TPF FPT
After reviewing all the elements pertinent to the case of Maritime Delimitation in the
Black Sea, Romania concludes the following:
i) The applicable law in this case is represented by the 1997 Additional
Agreement (as lex speciali), by the 1982 UNCLOS reflecting the general
principles of the Law of the Sea (as lex generali) and by the 1949
Romanian-Soviet Procès Verbaux a nd its subsequent Romanian-Soviet
documents concluded in 1954, 1963 and 1974;
ii) According to the relevant provisions of the Additional Agreement, the
delimitation method to by applied in the present case consists in first
drawing a provisional equidistant/m edian line between the relevant
adjacent/opposite Romanian and Ukrainian coasts and then taking into
consideration the influence of th e relevant circumstances of the
delimitation area on this line;
iii) This method corresponds with the me thod constantly ap plied in recent
jurisprudence of international courts and tribunals, a nd in particular in the
case-law of this Court;
iv) The first segment of the maritime boundary was already established by the
1949 Procès Verbaux, on the 12 nm arc around Serpents’ Island;
v) Serpents’ Island, as a rock unable to support human habitation or an
economic life of its own, has no e ffect upon the delimitation of the
continental shelf and the exclusiv e economic zones of Romania and
Ukraine, other than the 12 nm semi-e nclave of territorial sea surrounding
it;
TPPT The purpose of this “Summary of conclusions”, as well as of the conclusions of certain
chapters, is to better underline important findings in this Memorial. It does not represent an exhaustive
presentation of the arguments and reasoning of Romania.
238vi) This is not only in conformity with th e natural characteristics of Serpents’
Island, but also with th e provisions of the 1949 Procès Verbaux and is
supported by a constant international State practice and jurisprudence;
vii) Irrespective of the status of Serpents ’ Island as a rock unable to support
human habitation and an economic lif e of its own in the meaning of
Article 121(3), this maritime formation, taking into account its natural
characteristics, uninhabitable nature, and geographi cal position in respect
to the Romanian mainland, which leads to the fact that it has the potential
to distort an otherwise equitable e quidistant line, should be ignored for
purposes of delimitation of the contin ental shelf and exclusive economic
zone between Romania and Ukraine, except for the 12 nm semi-enclave of
territorial sea surrounding it;
viii) Ukraine’s conduct in relation to Serp ents’ Island implies a recognition
that Serpents’ Island cannot sustain human habitation or economic life of
its own. In any event the Ukrainian measures cannot lead to any change in
respect to the legal status of Serpents’ Island;
ix) According to the geographical backgr ound and its relevant circumstances,
the provisional equidistant/median line is not to be shifted, apart from the
12 nm semi-enclave around Serpents’ Island and the segment uniting the
arc around Serpents’ Is land with the equidist ance line (the existing
geographical background and relevant circumstances not justifying any
further adjustment of the equidistant/median line);
x) This solution is perfectly equitable, as confirmed by the “proportionality
test”. It is also in conformity w ith the established practice of delimitation
in the Black Sea.
xi) Any other solution would encroach upon Romania’s entitlements in the
delimitation area and would affect its s ecurity interests, as well as prolong
the inequities perpetrated with re gard to Serpents’ Island and its
surrounding maritime areas, as a consequence of history.
239 Figure 34
The maritime boundary between the exclusive
economic zones and the continental shelf of
Romania and Ukraine in the Black Sea
241LIST OF ANNEXES
242Annex RM 1 Treaty on the Relations of Good Neighbourliness and Co-
Operation between Romania and Ukraine, signed at Constan ţa,
on 2 June 1997;
Annex RM 2 Agreement Additional to the Treaty on the Relations of Good
Neighbourliness and Co-Opera tion between Romania and
Ukraine, concluded by excha nge of letters between the
Ministers of Foreign Affairs of Romania and Ukraine, done on
2 June 1997;
Annex RM 3 Treaty between Romania and Ukraine on the Romanian-
Ukrainian State Border Regime, Collaboration and Mutual
Assistance on Border Matters, signed at Cern ăuţi, on 17 June
2003;
Annex RM 4 Protocol on the Exchange of In struments of Ratification of the
Treaty between Romania and Ukraine on the Romanian-
Ukrainian State Border Regime, Collaboration and Mutual
assistance on Border Matters, Mamaia, 27 May 2004;
Annex RM 5 Vasile Cucu, Gheorghe Vl ăsceanu, Insula Şerpilor (Serpents’
Island,) „Viaţa Româneasc ă” Publishing House, Bucharest,
1991;
Annex RMC 6 R.I. ălinescu, Insula Şerpilor. Schiţă monografică (Serpents’
Island. Monographic Study), published in the Analele Dobrogei
magazine, “Glasul Bucovinei” Publishing House, Cern ăuţi,
1931;
Annex RM 7 Note of 27 June 1940 to the Romanian Mission in Moscow;
Annex RM 8 Note of 28 June 1940 to the Romanian Mission in Moscow;
Annex RM 9 Note of 28 June 1940 of the Romanian Mission in Moscow;
Annex RM 10 M (reiildi)u Ştefănescu, Din amintirile veteranilor
(War Veterans’ Memories) , published in Revista de istorie
militară (Military History Magazine), issue no. 3 (31)/1995;
Annex RM 11 Protocol to Specify the Line of the State Boundary between the
People’s Republic of Romania and the Union of Soviet
Socialist Republics, signed at Moscow, on 4 February 1948;
Annex RM 12 Procès Verbal of Delivery-Reception, signed on Serpents’
Island on 23 May 1948;
243Annex RM 13 Procès Verbal of the Descript ion of the State Border Line
between the People’s Republic of Romania and the Union of
the Soviet Socialist Republic s, demarcated in 1948-1949,
signed at Bucharest, on 27 September 1949, volume III;
Annex RM 14 Procès Verbal of Border Sign no. 1438 (buoy), signed at
Bucharest, on 27 September 1949;
Annex RM 15 Procès Verbal of Border Sign no. 1439 (beacon), signed at
Bucharest, on 27 September 1949;
Annex RM 16 Treaty between the Government of the People’s Republic of
Romania and the Government of the USSR on the Regime of
the Romanian-Soviet State Bo rder, signed at Moscow, on 25
November 1949;
Annex RM 17 Act signed by the Border Author ized Officer of the People’s
Republic of Romania for the Tulcea sector and the Border
Authorized Officer of the Un ion of the Soviet Socialist
Republics for the Ismail sector, in Ismail on 26 December
1954;
Annex RM 18 Treaty between the Government of the People's Republic of
Romania and the Government of the Union of Soviet Socialist
Republics on the Romanian-Soviet State Border Regime,
Collaboration and Mutual Assistance on Border Matters (with
Procès Verbal), signed at Bucharest, on 27 February 1961;
Annex RM 19 Procès Verbal of Description of the State Border Line between
the People’s Republic of Romania and the Union of the Soviet
Socialist Republics on Rivers Tur, Tisa, Prut and Danube,
drafted on the Basis of the Ve rification Effected in 1961-1962
in Sectors where Modifications as Compared to the 1948-1949
Demarcation Documents Occurred, signed at Iaşi, on 20 August
1963;
Annex RM 20 Procès Verbal of Border Sign no. 1438 (buoy) , signed at Ia şi,
on 20 August 1963;
Annex RM 21 Procès Verbal of Description of the State Border Line between
the Socialist Republic of Romania and the Union of the Soviet
Socialist Republics from Border Sign no. 1335 to Border Sign
no. 1439, Drafted on the Basis of th e Verifications Effected in
1972-1973, the Tulcea sector, signed in Ismail, on 4 September
1974;
Annex RM 22 Procès Verbal of Border Sign no. 1439 (beacon), signed in
Ismail, on 4 September 1974;
244Annex RM 23 Note verbale no. C26/3118 dated 17 June 2003 of the Ministry
of Foreign Affairs of Romania to the Embassy of Ukraine in
Bucharest;
Annex RM 24 Note verbale no. E VI-1/3559 dated 27 May 2004 of the
Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Romania to the Embassy of
Ukraine in Bucharest;
Annex RM 25 Note verbale no. C23/491 da ted 24 January 2002 of the
Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Romania to the Ministry of
Foreign Affairs of Ukraine;
Annex RM 26 Note verbale no. 72/16-446-119 dated 29 May 2002 of the
Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine to the Embassy of
Romania in Kiev;
Annex RM 27 Ukraine. List of the geographi cal coordinates of the points
defining the position of the baselines for measuring the width
of the territorial waters, economic zone and continental shelf of
the Black Sea, Law of the Sea Bulletin no.36/1998;
Annex RM 28 Extract from the minutes of the 1976 Romanian-Soviet
negotiations;
Annex RM 29 Extract from the minutes of the 1978 Romanian-Soviet
negotiations;
Annex RM 30 Extract from the minutes of the 1980 Romanian-Soviet
negotiations;
Annex RM 31 Extract from the minutes of the 1987 Romanian-Soviet
negotiations;
Annex RM 32 Declaration of the Vietnamese mi nister of foreign affairs, Mr.
Nguyen Dy Nien, published by the Vietnamese newspaper
Nhân Dân, on 1 July 2004;
Annex RM 33 Article titled “The apple of discord tasting like oil” , published
in Iug, issue no. 51 (15053), of 13 July 2002; author: Alexandr
Iurcenko;
Annex RM 34 Opinion of the Committee on Culture and Education of the
Parliamentary Assembly of the Council of Europe on the
freedom of expression in Ukraine , Rapporteur: Andrzej
Urbanczyk, Poland, Socialist Group; Doc. 8946/23 January
2001;
Annex RM 35 Resolution 1346 (2003) of the Parliamentary Assembly of the
Council of Europe, "Honouring of ob ligations and
commitments by Ukraine";
245Annex RM 36 Article titled “The tourist island”, published in the Ukrainian
newspaper Kievskie Vedomosti, issue no. 56 (2861) of 17
March 2003; author: Serghei Milosevich;
Annex RM 37 Report of Baron of Hübner to Count Boul-Schauenstein with
respect to the condition of th e Serpents’ Island: geographical
data about it, opinion on who would be entitled to own it, etc.
Xerographic Collection of Vienna, CCVI/1;
Annex RM 38 Report on the improvement of navigation on Lower Danube,
presented to the European Commission by Mr. C.A. Hartley, its
chief-engineer, Galatz, 17 October 1857 , General Department
of the National Archives, Galatz, Romania, European Danube
Commission, 5/1857-1858;
Annex RM 39 Document no. 5/0, issued by the Technical Department of the
European Danube Commission on 28 June 1920, at Sulina,
General Department of the National Archives, Galatz,
Romania, European Danube Commission. S. G., 82/1919-1923;
Annex RM 40 Report addressed to the Romani an Minister for Home Affairs
with respect to Serpents’ Island, drafted and signed by a Police
Inspector and by the M.D. in Ch ief of the Ministry of Home
Affairs (indecipherable signatures), 14 May 1938;
Annex RM 41 The Great Soviet Encyclopaedia, Volume 27, Moscow, 1933,
p. 74;
Annex RM 42 Article titled “Insula Serpilor" ("Serpents’ Island)” , published
in the Romanian newspaper Acţiunea (The Action), issue 2343,
of 25 March 1938; author: D. L. Stahiescu;
Annex RM 43Si Ionionescu, Pitorescul României (The Picturesque of
Romania), volume I, Între Dun ăre şi mare (Between the
Danube and the Sea), “Cartea Românească” Publishing House,
1942;
Annex RM 44 GP eopga, Λευκη. Insula Şerpilor (Λευκη. Serpents’ Island),
in the Romanian Magazine for History, Archaeology and
Philology, published by the “I.V. Socecu” Publishing House,
Bucharest, 1894;
Annex RM 45 M Dirhai ăghicescu, Istoricul principalelor puncte pe Dun ăre
dela Gura Tisei pân ă la Mare şi pe coastele m ării dela Varna
la Odesa (The History of the Main Landmarks on the Danube,
from the Tisa’s Mouth to the Sea and on the Sea Shore, from
Varna to Odessa), Bucharest, 1943;
246Annex RM 46 Ge Rorgeu, Insula Serpilor (Serpents’ Island), “Atelierele
Grafice Emil Grabovschi” Publishing House, Chişinău, 1940;
Annex RM 47 Edward Daniel Clarke, Travels in various countries of Europe,
Asia and Africa, Part the First, Russia, Tartary and Turkey ,
Cambridge, Printed at the University Press by H. Watts, 1810;
Annex RM 48 Alexan Bdouza, Observaţiuni fitosociologice pe Insula
Şerpilor (Phyto-sociological obs ervations on the Serpents’
Island), the Publishing House of the Romanian Naturalists
Society, Cluj, 1929
Annex RM 49 AlexanV drlahu ţă, România Pitoreasc ă (Picturesque
Romania), “I.V. Socecu” Publishing House, Bucharest, 1901;
Annex RM 50 Article titled “The taming of the serpents”, published by the
Ukrainian newspaper Ukraina Moloda, issue no. 167 (1973) of
12 September 2002; author: M. Axaniuk;
Annex RM 51 Article titled “A patch of Ukraine between sea and sky” ,
published in the Ukrainian newspaper Golos Ukraini, issue no.
78 (3078) of 23 April 2003;
Annex RM 52 Article titled “Acacias are goi ng to blossom on Serpents’
Island, too”, published in the Ukrainian newspaper Golos
Ukraini, issue no. 83 (3083), of 7 May 2003; author: Gheorghi
Vorotniuc;
Annex RM 53 Article titled “The little to wn of the lighthouse on Serpents’
Island”, published by the Ukrainian newspaper Odesskie
Izvestia, issue no. 207 (3025), of 3 November 2004;
Annex RM 54 Edm Sundcer, Travels in Circassia, Krim, Tartary, &c.,
including a stream voyage dow n the Danube, from Vienna to
Constantinople and round the Black Sea, in 1836, London,
Henry Colburn, Great Marlborough Street, 1837;
Annex RM 55 Cyrille, From Paris to Serpents’ Island across Romania,
Hungary and the Mouths of the Danube (De Paris à l’Île des
Serpents à travers la Roumanie, la Hongrie et les bouches du
Danube), « Ernest Leroux » Publishing House, Paris, 1876;
Annex RM 56 Article titled “The number of the islanders is going to
increase”, published in the Ukrainian newspaper Odeskie
Izvestia, issue no. 192 (2766), of 16 October 2003; author:
Vladislav Kitik;
Annex RM 57 Article titled “The Serpents’ Island is the most important island
in the Black Sea and it belongs to Ukraine”, published in the
247 Ukrainian newspaper Zerkalo Nedeli, issue of 19 August 1995;
author: A. Murahovski;
Annex RM 58 Article titled “Serpents’ Island of the Kilia District” , published
in the Ukrainian newspaper Vecherniia Odessa, issue no. 27
(7565) of 19 February 2002; author: Dora Dukova;
Annex RM 59 The Black Sea Pilot comprisi ng the Dardanelles, Sea of
Marmara, Bosporus, Black Sea, and Sea of Azov , Seventh
Edition, 1920, London, printe d by the Hydrographic
Department, Admiralty;
Annex RM 60 The Black Sea Pilot comprisi ng the Dardanelles, Sea of
Marmara, Bosporus, Black Sea, and Sea of Azov , Eighth
Edition, 1930, London, printe d by the Hydrographic
Department, Admiralty;
Annex RM 61 Document no. 2093/345, of 10 August 1933, issued by the
Technical Service of the European Danube Commission,
Sulina, General Department of the National Archives, Danube
European Commission, S. G., 364/1929-1939;
Annex RM 62 Documente privind istoria militar ă a poporului român - iulie
1891-decembrie 1894 (Documents on the Military History of
the Romanian People – July 1891 – December 1894) , Editura
Militară (Military Publishing House), Bucharest, 1976;
Annex RM 63 Article titled “Geamanduri în uniformă” (“Buoys in Uniform”),
published in the Romanian newspaper Curentul, issue 2795 of
14 November 1935; author Ion Dimitrescu;
Annex RM 64 Article titled “The map of depths near the Serpents’ Island –
navigation of maritime ships to th e island is to be ensured by
the experts of the GOSHIDR OGRAFIA enterprise, of
Ukraine”, published by the Ukrainian newspaper Odesskie
Izvestia, issue no. 213 (2541) of 13 November 2002, quoting
Alexandr Boris, first deputy dire ctor of Ukrmorcartografia (a
State-owned cartographic enterprise);
Annex RM 65 Article titled “The Military does not need Serpents’ Island” ,
published in the Ukrainian newspaper Iug, issue no. 22 (15024)
of 23 March 2002; unsigned;
Annex RM 66 Article titled “I wanted so bad to have a French perfume…and,
in a fortnight, I had it, when they brought the correspondence
by helicopter”, published in the Ukrainian newspaper Fakti,
issue of 6 October 2004; author: Aleksandr Levit;
248Annex RM 67 Note verbale no. EVI-1/2803 dated 4 May 2004 of the Ministry
of Foreign Affairs of Romania to the Embassy of Ukraine in
Bucharest;
Annex RM 68 Note verbale no. EVI/204 dated 9 August 2004 of the Ministry
of Foreign Affairs of Romania to the Embassy of Ukraine in
Bucharest;
Annex RM 69 Note verbale no. 72/22-446-4290 dated 18 August 2004 of the
Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Ukraine to the Embassy of
Romania in Kiev;
Annex RM 70 Article titled “Serpents’ Isla nd’s concerns are our concerns” ,
published in the Odessa-based Odeskie Izvestia, issues no. 171
(2499) of 14 September 2002; author: Aleksandr Seryi;
Annex RM 71 Article titled “I find myself again at the end of the world” ,
published in the Ukrainian newspaper Odeskyi Vestnik, issue
no. 80 (3337) of 13 April 2005”; author: Valentina Surnina;
Annex RM 72 Article titled “On th e island the weather is fine”, published in
the Ukrainian newspaper Odesskie Izvestia , issue no. 238
(3056) of 14 December 2004; author: Vladislav Kitic;
Annex RM 73 Article titled “Ukraine decided to withdraw its anti-aircraft
defence from Serpents’ Island” published in the Ukrainian
newspaper Slovo, issue no. 18 (491) of 3 May 2002; author:
Viktor Veprik;
Annex RM 74 Article titled “The issue of Serpents’ Island failed once again to
be solved”, published in the Ukrainian newspaper Stolychnie
Novosti, issue no. 3 (248) of 28 January 2003; author: Tatiana
Visotzkaia;
Annex RM 75 Article titled “Changes are expe cted to be carried out on
Serpents’ Island”, published in the Ukrainian newspaper
Vecherniia Odessa, issue no. 197-198 (8138-8139) of 25
December 2004; author: Natalia Harcenko;
Annex RM 76 News titled "The Cabinet of Ministers will take
care of Serpents' Island" of the Ukrainian news
agency MIG news , available on Internet at
http://mignews.com.ua/articles/164879.html
Annex RM 77 Note verbale no. C23/2473 dated 25 April 2002 of the Ministry
of Foreign Affairs of Romania to the Embassy of Ukraine in
Bucharest;
249Annex RM 78 Note verbale no.C26/5805 dated 15 November 2002of the
Ministry of Foreign Affairs of Romania to the Embassy of
Ukraine in Bucharest;
Annex RM 79 Note verbale no.C26/1794 dated 25 April 2003of the Ministry
of Foreign Affairs of Romania to the Embassy of Ukraine in
Bucharest;
Annex RM 80 Decree No. 176 for the Modification of Articles 4, 120, 159 and
172 from the Decree No. 41 of 14 February 1950 Regarding
the Surveillance, Order and Control of Maritime and River
Navigation, in the Official Bulletin of the People’s Republic of
Romania no. 98 of 29 September 1951;
Annex RM 81 Decree No. 39 of the Presidium of the Great National Assembly
of the People’s Republic of Romania on Regulating the Regime
of the Territorial Waters of th e People’s Republic of Romania
of 21 January 1956;
Annex RM 82 Decision of the Central Execu tive Committee and the Council
of the People’s Commissars of the USSR on Approval of the
Regulation on the Protection of the State Border of the USSR of
15 June 1927;
Annex RM 83 Letter of Mr. Leonid Kuchma, president of Ukraine, addressed
to Mr. Ion Iliescu, president of Romania, on 29 August 2002;
Annex RM 84 Broce huttled Creation of the deep-water navigational
canal Danube – Black Sea in the Ukrainian part of delta of the
river Danube , Ministry of Transport and Communication of
Ukraine, 2004;
Annex RM 85 Broceh niteled Revival of Danube-Black sea deep-water
navigational channel on Uk rainian part of delta, Ministry of
Transport and Communication of Ukraine, April 2005;
Annex RM 86 Brochure edited in 2004 by the Ukrainian State-owned
enterprise Ukrmorcartographia;
Annexes RM 87 – Pictures of Serpents’ Island from the inter-bellum period.
- RM 91
250LIST OF MAPS
251MAP RM A 1 THE COURSE OF DANUBE (Source: Octavian Ion Penda,
Ion Ciortan, M ăriuca Radu (editors), Description of Romania
(Descriptio Romaniae), R. A. Monitorul Oficial, Bucharest,
2004, pp 68-69);
MAP RM A 2 MAP OF MEDIAEVAL HUNGARY (Source: Octavian Ion
Penda, Ion Ciortan, M ăriuca Radu (editors), Description of
Romania ( Descriptio Romaniae ), R. A. Monitorul Oficial,
Bucharest, 2004, pp 92-93);
MAP RM A 3 BLACK SEA ( Source: Octavian Ion Penda, Ion Ciortan,
Măriuca Radu (editors), Description of Romania ( Descriptio
Romaniae), R. A. Monitorul Oficial, Bucharest, 2004, pp 98-
99);
MAP RM A 4 BLACK SEA (Source: Octavian Ion Penda, Ion Ciortan,
Măriuca Radu (editors), Description of Romania ( Descriptio
Romaniae), R. A. Monitorul Oficial, Bucharest, 2004, pp 90-
91);
MAP RM A 5 MAP OF ROMANIA (Source: Octavian Ion Penda, Ion
Ciortan, M ăriuca Radu (editors), Description of Romania
(Descriptio Romaniae ), R. A. Monitorul Oficial, Bucharest,
2004, pp 128-129);
MAP RM A 6 SERPENTS’ ISLAND (Source: Octavian Ion Penda, Ion
Ciortan, M ăriuca Radu (editors), Description of Romania
(Descriptio Romaniae ), R. A. Monitorul Oficial, Bucharest,
2004, pp 104-105);
MAP RM A 7 BOUNDARY BETWEEN RUSSI A AND TURKEY ON
THE BESSARABIAN FRONTI ER AS FIXED BY THE
TREATIES OF 30 PhOF MARCH 1856, 6 PhPJANUARY 1857
th
AND 19 PJUNE 1857 (Source: Hertslet, The Map of Europe by
Treaty, vol. II (1828-1863));
MAP RM A 8 MAP ANNEXED TOthHE PROTOCOL OF PARIS OF
JANUARY 6 PP1857 (Source: Hertslet, The Map of Europe by
Treaty, vol. II (1828-1863), following p. 1301);
MAP RM A 9 MAP OF BESSARABIA AND THE DOBROUTHCEA
SHOWING BOUNDARY AS PROPOSED BY THE
TREATY OF SAN STEFANO AND AS FIXED BthTHE
TREATY OF BERLIN 13 P JULY 1878 (Source:
Hertslet, The Map of Europe by Treaty, vol. IV (1875-1891),
maps following pp. 2790 and 2798);
252 MAP RM A 10 MAP OF ROMANIA (Annexed to the 1947 Peace Treaty with
a i n a m o R );
MAP RM A 11 MAP OF THE STATE BORDER BETWEEN THE UNION
OF THE SOVIET SOCIALIS T REPUBLICS AND THE
PEOPLE’S REPUBLIC OF ROMANIA ( Annexed to the
1949 Procès Verbal, showing the border signs no. 1438 and
1439);
MAP RM A 12 MAP OF THE SULINA AREA ( Published by the
Geographical Service of the Romanian Arm;Edition: 1916)
MAP RM A 13 MAP OF SERPENTS’ ISLAND ( Magnified image of the
representation of Serpents’ Island on the previous map
MAP RM A 14 MAP OF DOBROGEA Published by the General Staff of the
Romanian Army; Edition: 1887);
MAP RM A 15 WESTERN PART OF THE BLACK SEA (Published by the
General Directorate for Na vigation and Oceanography,
Ministry of Defence of the USSR, Edition: 1977);
MAP RM A 16 WESTERN PART OF THE BLACK SEA (Published by the
Soviet Hydrographic Service of the Black Sea Navy, Edition:
1957);
MAP RM A 17 WESTERN PART OF THE BLACK SEA (Published by the
Soviet Hydrographic Service of the Black Sea Navy, Edition:
1957- detail of the maritime boundary around Serpents’
Island);
MAP RM A 18 BLACK SEA FROM THE NISTRU/DNIESTER
ESTUARY TO THE SULINA MOUTH ( Published by the
General Directorate for Na vigation and Oceanography,
Ministry of Defence of the USSR; Edition: 1;82
MAP RM A 19 BLACK SEA FROM ODESSA TO SULINA MOUTH
(Published by the General Dire ctorate for Navigation and
Oceanography, Ministry of Defe nce of the USSR; Edition:
1985);
MAP RM A 20 NORTH-WESTERN PART OF THE BLACK SEA
(Published by the General Dire ctorate for Navigation and
Oceanography, Ministry of Defe nce of the USSR; Edition:
1985);
253MAP RM A 21 BLACK SEA AND THE SEA OF AZOV (Published by the
State Hydrographic Service of Ukraine, Kiev; Edition: 2000
MAPRMA22 BLACK SEA AND THE SEA OF AZOV ( Published by the
State Hydrographic Service of Ukraine, Kiev; Edition: 2000 -
detail of the maritime boundary around Serpents’ Island);
MAP RM A 23 WESTERN PART OF THE BLACK SEA FROM ODESSA
TO SULINA MOUTH (Published by the Ukrainian State
Hydrographic Institution Bran ch “Ukrmorcartographia;
Edition: 200;
MAP RM A 24 WESTERN PART OF THE BLACK SEA FROM ODESSA
TO SULINA MOUTH ( Published by the Ukrainian State
Hydrographic Institution Branch “Ukrmorcartographia”;
Edition: 2001 - detail of the maritime boundary around
Serpents’ Island);
MAP RM A 25 WESTERN PART OF THE BLACK SEA (Published by the
Ukrainian State Hydrographic Institution Branch
“Ukrmorcartographia”; Edition: 2003
MAP RM A 26 NORTH-WESTERN PART OF THE BLACK SEA FROM
CONSTANŢA TO SEVASTOPOL ( Published by the
Maritime Hydrographic Directorate of the People’s Republic of
Romania; Edition: 195;
MAP RM A 27 WESTERN COAST OF THE BLACK SEA FROM
DNIESTER ESTUARY TO SULINA (Published by the
Maritime Hydrographic Directorate of the People’s Republic of
Romania; Edition: 1959);
MAP RM A 28 WESTERN PART OF THE BLACK SEA FROM THE
MIDIA CAPE TO THE SULINA MOUTH ( Published by
the Hydrographic Directorate ofthe Socialist Republic of
Romania; Edition: 1970);
MAP RM A 29 WESTERN COAST OF THE BLACK SEA FROM THE
MOUTH OF THE SAINT GEORGE ARM TO BUHTA
ŽEBRIJANSKAJA (Published by the Maritime Hydrographic
Directorate of the Socialist public of Romani a; Edition:
1982);
MAP RM A 30 WESTERN COAST OF THE BLACK SEA FROM THE
KALIAKRA CAPE TO THE KILIA ARM ( Published by
the Maritime Hydrographic Directorate of the Socialist
Republic of Romania; Edition: 1985);
254MAP RM A 31 THE WESTERN PART OF THE BLACK SEA ( Published
by the Maritime Hydrographic Directorate of Romania;
Edition: 1993);
MAP RM A 32 WESTERN AREA OF THE BLACK SEA FROM
KALIAKRA CAPE TO THE DANUBE DELTA ( Published
by the Maritime Hydrographic Directorate of Romania;
Edition: 1995);
MAP RM A 33 BLACK SEA WESTERN AREA FROM SULINA TO
ZONGULDAK ( Published by the Maritime Hydrographic
Directorate of Romania; Edition: 1997);
MAP RM A 34 WESTERN COAST OF THE BLACK SEA FROM
KALIAKRA CAPE TO THE KILIA ARM ( Published by
the Maritime Hydrographic Dire ctorate of Romania; Edition:
2000);
MAP RM A 35 WESTERN AREA OF THE BLACK SEA (Published by the
Maritime Hydrographic Director ate of Romania; Edition:
2003);
MAP RM A 36 BLACK SEA ROMANIAN COAST FROM KALIAKRA
CAPE TO THE DA NUBE DELTA ( Published by the
Maritime Hydrographic Director ate of Romania; Edition:
2003);
MAP RM A 37 BLACK SEA. DANUBE DELTA. ACCESS TO SULINA
MOUTH (Published by the General Directorate for Navigation
and Oceanography, Ministry of Defence of the Russian
Federation; Edition 1994)
MAP RM A 38 NORTH-WESTERN PART OF THE BLACK SEA FROM
TUZLA TO YALTA (Published by the Hydrographic Service,
Ministry of Defence of the Republic of Bulgaria, Edition 1993);
MAP RM A 39 BLACK SEA ( Published by the Hydrographic and
Oceanographic Service of the French Navy - Service
Hydrographique et Océanogr aphique de la Marine;dition
1990);
MAP RM A 40 BLACK SEA (Published by the Hydrographic and
Oceanographic Service of the French Navy - Service
Hydrographique et Océanogr aphique de la Marine;dition
1990 - detail of the maritime boundary around Serpents’
Island)
MAP RM A 41 BLACK SEA MAP. SOVIET AND ROMANIAN COASTS
FROM DANUBE DELTA TO IL’ICEVSK ( Published by
255 the German Federal Institute for Maritime Navigation and
Hydrology - Bundesamt fur Seeschi ffart und Hidrologie;
Edition: 1991);
MAP RM A 42 BLACK SEA MAP. SOVIET AND ROMANIAN COASTS
FROM DANUBE DELTA TO IL’ICEVSK ( Published by
the German Federal Institute for Maritime Navigation and
Hydrology - Bundesamt fur Seeschi ffart und Hidrologie;
Edition: 1991 - detail of the maritime boundary around
Serpents’ Island)
256
Memorial of Romania